Call me Ishmael. Some years ago - never mind how long precisely - having little or no money in my purse, and nothing particular to interest me on shore, I thought I would sail about a little and see the watery part of the world. It is a way I have of driving off the spleen, and regulating the circulation. Whenever I find myself growing grim about the mouth; whenever it is a damp, drizzly November in my soul; whenever I find myself involuntarily pausing before coffin warehouses, and bringing up the rear of every funeral I meet; and especially whenever my hypos get such an upper hand of me, that it requires a strong moral principle to prevent me from deliberately stepping into the street, and methodically knocking people's hats off - then, I account it high time to get to sea as soon as I can. This is my substitute for pistol and ball. With a philosophical flourish Cato throws himself upon his sword; I quietly take to the ship. There is nothing surprising in this. If they but knew it, almost all men in their degree, some time or other, cherish very nearly the same feelings towards the ocean with me.
There now is your insular city of the Manhattoes, belted round by wharves as Indian isles by coral reefs - commerce surrounds it with her surf. Right and left, the streets take you waterward. Its extreme down-town is the battery, where that noble mole is washed by waves, and cooled by breezes, which a few hours previous were out of sight of land. Look at the crowds of water-gazers there.
Circumambulate the city of a dreamy Sabbath afternoon. Go from Corlears Hook to Coenties Slip, and from thence, by Whitehall northward. What do you see? - Posted like silent sentinels all around the town, stand thousands upon thousands of mortal men fixed in ocean reveries. Some leaning against the spiles; some seated upon the pier-heads; some looking over the bulwarks
of ships from China; some high aloft in the rigging, as if striving to get a still better seaward peep. But these are all landsmen; of week days pent up in lath and plaster - tied to counters, nailed to benches, clinched to desks. How then is this? Are the green fields gone? What do they here?
But look! here come more crowds, pacing straight for the water, and seemingly bound for a dive. Strange! Nothing will content them but the extremest limit of the land; loitering under the shady lee of yonder warehouses will not suffice. No. They must get just as nigh the water as they possibly can without falling in. And there they stand - miles of them - leagues. Inlanders all, they come from lanes and alleys, streets and avenues, - north, east, south, and west. Yet here they all unite. Tell me, does the magnetic virtue of the needles of the compasses of all those ships attract them thither?
Once more. Say, you are in the country; in some high land of lakes. Take almost any path you please, and ten to one it carries you down in a dale, and leaves you there by a pool in the stream. There is magic in it. Let the most absent- minded of men be plunged in his deepest reveries - stand that man on his legs, set his feet a-going, and he will infallibly lead you to water, if water there be in all that region. Should you ever be athirst in the great American desert, try this experiment, if your caravan happen to be supplied with a metaphysical professor. Yes, as every one knows, meditation and water are wedded for ever.
But here is an artist. He desires to paint you the dreamiest, shadiest, quietest, most enchanting bit of romantic landscape in all the valley of the Saco. What is the chief element he employs? There stand his trees, each with a hollow trunk, as if a hermit and a crucifix were within; and here sleeps his meadow, and there sleep his cattle; and up from yonder cottage goes a sleepy smoke. Deep into distant woodlands winds a mazy way, reaching to overlapping spurs of mountains bathed in their hill-side blue. But though the picture lies thus tranced, and though this pine-tree shakes down its sighs like leaves upon this shepherd's head, yet all were vain, unless the shepherd's eye were fixed upon the magic stream before him. Go visit the Prairies in June,
when for scores on scores of miles you wade knee-deep among Tiger- lilies - what is the one charm wanting? - Water - there is not a drop of water there! Were Niagara but a cataract of sand, would you travel your thousand miles to see it? Why did the poor poet of Tennessee, upon suddenly receiving two handfuls of silver, deliberate whether to buy him a coat, which he sadly needed, or invest his money in a pedestrian trip to Rockaway Beach? Why is almost every robust healthy boy with a robust healthy soul in him, at some time or other crazy to go to sea? Why upon your first voyage as a passenger, did you yourself feel such a mystical vibration, when first told that you and your ship were now out of sight of land? Why did the old Persians hold the sea holy? Why did the Greeks give it a separate deity, and own brother of Jove? Surely all this is not without meaning. And still deeper the meaning of that story of Narcissus, who because he could not grasp the tormenting, mild image he saw in the fountain, plunged into it and was drowned. But that same image, we ourselves see in all rivers and oceans. It is the image of the ungraspable phantom of life; and this is the key to it all.
Now, when I say that I am in the habit of going to sea whenever I begin to grow hazy about the eyes, and begin to be over conscious of my lungs, I do not mean to have it inferred that I ever go to sea as a passenger. For to go as a passenger you must needs have a purse, and a purse is but a rag unless you have something in it. Besides, passengers get sea-sick - grow quarrelsome - don't sleep of nights - do not enjoy themselves much, as a general thing; - no, I never go as a passenger; nor, though I am something of a salt, do I ever go to sea as a Commodore, or a Captain, or a Cook. I abandon the glory and distinction of such offices to those who like them. For my part, I abominate all honorable respectable toils, trials, and tribulations of every kind whatsoever. It is quite as much as I can do to take care of myself, without taking care of ships, barques, brigs, schooners, and what not. And as for going as cook, - though I confess there is considerable glory in that, a cook being a sort of officer on ship-board - yet, somehow, I never fancied broiling fowls; - though once broiled, judiciously buttered, and judgmatically salted and peppered, there is no one who will
speak more respectfully, not to say reverentially, of a broiled fowl than I will. It is out of the idolatrous dotings of the old Egyptians upon broiled ibis and roasted river horse, that you see the mummies of those creatures in their huge bake-houses the pyramids.
No, when I go to sea, I go as a simple sailor, right before the mast, plumb down into the forecastle, aloft there to the royal mast-head. True, they rather order me about some, and make me jump from spar to spar, like a grasshopper in a May meadow. And at first, this sort of thing is unpleasant enough. It touches one's sense of honor, particularly if you come of an old established family in the land, the van Rensselaers, or Randolphs, or Hardicanutes. And more than all, if just previous to putting your hand into the tar-pot, you have been lording it as a country schoolmaster, making the tallest boys stand in awe of you. The transition is a keen one, I assure you, from the schoolmaster to a sailor, and requires a strong decoction of Seneca and the Stoics to enable you to grin and bear it. But even this wears off in time.
What of it, if some old hunks of a sea-captain orders me to get a broom and sweep down the decks? What does that indignity amount to, weighed, I mean, in the scales of the New Testament? Do you think the archangel Gabriel thinks anything the less of me, because I promptly and respectfully obey that old hunks in that particular instance? Who aint a slave? Tell me that. Well, then, however the old sea-captains may order me about - however they may thump and punch me about, I have the satisfaction of knowing that it is all right; that everybody else is one way or other served in much the same way - either in a physical or metaphysical point of view, that is; and so the universal thump is passed round, and all hands should rub each other's shoulder-blades, and be content.
Again, I always go to sea as a sailor, because they make a point of paying me for my trouble, whereas they never pay passengers a single penny that I ever heard of. On the contrary, passengers themselves must pay. And there is all the difference in the world between paying and being paid. The act of paying is perhaps the most uncomfortable infliction that the two orchard
thieves entailed upon us. But being paid, - what will compare with it? The urbane activity with which a man receives money is really marvellous, considering that we so earnestly believe money to be the root of all earthly ills, and that on no account can a monied man enter heaven. Ah! how cheerfully we consign ourselves to perdition!
Finally, I always go to sea as a sailor, because of the wholesome exercise and pure air of the forecastle deck. For as in this world, head winds are far more prevalent than winds from astern (that is, if you never violate the Pythagorean maxim), so for the most part the Commodore on the quarter-deck gets his atmosphere at second hand from the sailors on the forecastle. He thinks he breathes it first; but not so. In much the same way do the commonalty lead their leaders in many other things, at the same time that the leaders little suspect it. But wherefore it was that after having repeatedly smelt the sea as a merchant sailor, I should now take it into my head to go on a whaling voyage; this the invisible police officer of the Fates, who has the constant surveillance of me, and secretly dogs me, and influences me in some unaccountable way - he can better answer than any one else. And, doubtless, my going on this whaling voyage, formed part of the grand programme of Providence that was drawn up a long time ago. It came in as a sort of brief interlude and solo between more extensive performances. I take it that this part of the bill must have run something like this:
Grand Contested Election for the Presidency of the United States
Whaling Voyage by one Ishmael
BLOODY BATTLE IN AFFGHANISTAN
Though I cannot tell why it was exactly that those stage managers, the Fates, put me down for this shabby part of a whaling voyage, when others were set down for magnificent parts in high tragedies, and short and easy parts in genteel comedies, and jolly parts in farces - though I cannot tell why this was exactly; yet, now that I recall all the circumstances, I think I can see a little into the springs and motives which being cunningly presented to me under various disguises, induced me to set about
performing the part I did, besides cajoling me into the delusion that it was a choice resulting from my own unbiased freewill and discriminating judgment.
Chief among these motives was the overwhelming idea of the great whale himself. Such a portentous and mysterious monster roused all my curiosity. Then the wild and distant seas where he rolled his island bulk; the undeliverable, nameless perils of the whale; these, with all the attending marvels of a thousand Patagonian sights and sounds, helped to sway me to my wish. With other men, perhaps, such things would not have been inducements; but as for me, I am tormented with an everlasting itch for things remote. I love to sail forbidden seas, and land on barbarous coasts. Not ignoring what is good, I am quick to perceive a horror, and could still be social with it - would they let me - since it is but well to be on friendly terms with all the inmates of the place one lodges in.
By reason of these things, then, the whaling voyage was welcome; the great flood-gates of the wonder-world swung open, and in the wild conceits that swayed me to my purpose, two and two there floated into my inmost soul, endless processions of the whale, and, mid most of them all, one grand hooded phantom, like a snow hill in the air. *x* *x moby_002.html/Chapter ii - THE CARPET-BAG *
I stuffed a shirt or two into my old carpet-bag, tucked it under my arm, and started for Cape Horn and the Pacific. Quitting the good city of old Manhatto, I duly arrived in New Bedford. It was on a Saturday night in December. Much was I disappointed upon learning that the little packet for Nantucket had already sailed, and that no way of reaching that place would offer, till the following Monday.
As most young candidates for the pains and penalties of whaling
stop at this same New Bedford, thence to embark on their voyage, it may as well be related that I, for one, had no idea of so doing. For my mind was made up to sail in no other than a Nantucket craft, because there was a fine, boisterous something about everything connected with that famous old island, which amazingly pleased me. Besides though New Bedford has of late been gradually monopolizing the business of whaling, and though in this matter poor old Nantucket is now much behind her, yet Nantucket was her great original - the Tyre of this Carthage; - the place where the first dead American whale was stranded. Where else but from Nantucket did those aboriginal whalemen, the Red-Men, first sally out in canoes to give chase to the Leviathan? And where but from Nantucket, too, did that first adventurous little sloop put forth, partly laden with imported cobble-stones - so goes the story - to throw at the whales, in order to discover when they were nigh enough to risk a harpoon from the bowsprit?
Now having a night, a day, and still another night following before me in New Bedford, ere I could embark for my destined port, it became a matter of concernment where I was to eat and sleep meanwhile. It was a very dubious-looking, nay, a very dark and dismal night, bitingly cold and cheerless. I knew no one in the place. With anxious grapnels I had sounded my pocket, and only brought up a few pieces of silver, - So, wherever you go, Ishmael, said I to myself, as I stood in the middle of a dreary street shouldering my bag, and comparing the gloom towards the north with the darkness towards the south - wherever in your wisdom you may conclude to lodge for the night, my dear Ishmael, be sure to inquire the price, and don't be too particular.
With halting steps I paced the streets, and passed the sign of "The Crossed Harpoons" - but it looked too expensive and jolly there. Further on, from the bright red windows of the "Sword-Fish Inn", there came such fervent rays, that it seemed to have melted the packed snow and ice from before the house, for everywhere else the congealed frost lay ten inches thick in a hard, asphaltic pavement, - rather weary for me, when I struck my foot against the flinty projections, because from hard, remorseless
service the soles of my boots were in a most miserable plight. Too expensive and jolly, again thought I, pausing one moment to watch the broad glare in the street, and hear the sounds of the tinkling glasses within. But go on, Ishmael, said I at last; don't you hear? get away from before the door; your patched boots are stopping the way. So on I went. I now by instinct followed the streets that took me waterward, for there, doubtless, were the cheapest, if not the cheeriest inns.
Such dreary streets! blocks of blackness, not houses, on either hand, and here and there a candle, like a candle moving about in a tomb. At this hour of the night, of the last day of the week, that quarter of the town proved all but deserted. But presently I came to a smoky light proceeding from a low, wide building, the door of which stood invitingly open. It had a careless look, as if it were meant for the uses of the public; so, entering, the first thing I did was to stumble over an ash-box in the porch. Ha! thought I, ha, as the flying particles almost choked me, are these ashes from that destroyed city, Gomorrah? But "The Crossed Harpoons," and "The Sword-Fish?" - this, then, must needs be the sign of "The Trap". However, I picked myself up and hearing a loud voice within, pushed on and opened a second, interior door.
It seemed the great Black Parliament sitting in Tophet. A hundred black faces turned round in their rows to peer; and beyond, a black Angel of Doom was beating a book in a pulpit. It was a negro church; and the preacher's text was about the blackness of darkness, and the weeping and wailing and teeth- gnashing there. Ha, Ishmael, muttered I, backing out, Wretched entertainment at the sign of "The Trap!"
Moving on, I at last came to a dim sort of light not far from the docks, and heard a forlorn creaking in the air; and looking up, saw a swinging sign over the door with a white painting upon it, faintly representing a tall straight jet of misty spray, and these words underneath - "The Spouter- Inn: - Peter Coffin."
Coffin? - Spouter? - Rather ominous in that particular connexion, thought I. But it is a common name in Nantucket, they say, and I suppose this Peter here is an emigrant from there. As the light looked so dim, and the place, for the time, looked
quiet enough, and the dilapidated little wooden house itself looked as if it might have been carted here from the ruins of some burnt district, and as the swinging sign had a poverty-stricken sort of creak to it, I thought that here was the very spot for cheap lodgings, and the best of pea coffee.
It was a queer sort of place - a gable-ended old house, one side palsied as it were, and leaning over sadly. It stood on a sharp bleak corner, where that tempestuous wind Euroclydon kept up a worse howling than ever it did about poor Paul's tossed craft. Euroclydon, nevertheless, is a mighty pleasant zephyr to any one in-doors, with his feet on the hob quietly toasting for bed. "In judging of that tempestuous wind called Euroclydon," says an old writer - of whose works I possess the only copy extant - "it maketh a marvellous difference, whether thou lookest out at it from a glass window where the frost is all on the outside, or whether thou observest it from that sashless window, where the frost is on both sides, and of which the wight Death is the only glazier." True enough, thought I, as this passage occurred to my mind - old black-letter, thou reasonest well. Yes, these eyes are windows, and this body of mine is the house. What a pity they didn't stop up the chinks and the crannies though, and thrust in a little lint here and there. But it's too late to make any improvements now. The universe is finished; the copestone is on, and the chips were carted off a million years ago. Poor Lazarus there, chattering his teeth against the curbstone for his pillow, and shaking off his tatters with his shiverings, he might plug up both ears with rags, and put a corn-cob into his mouth, and yet that would not keep out the tempestuous Euroclydon. Euroclydon! says old Dives, in his red silken wrapper - (he had a redder one afterwards) pooh, pooh! What a fine frosty night; how Orion glitters; what northern lights! Let them talk of their oriental summer climes of everlasting conservatories; give me the privilege of making my own summer with my own coals.
But what thinks Lazarus? Can he warm his blue hands by holding them up to the grand northern lights? Would not Lazarus rather be in Sumatra than here? Would he not far rather lay him down lengthwise along the line of the equator; yea, ye
gods! go down to the fiery pit itself, in order to keep out this frost?
Now, that Lazarus should lie stranded there on the curbstone before the door of Dives, this is more wonderful than that an iceberg should be moored to one of the Moluccas. Yet Dives himself, he too lives like a Czar in an ice palace made of frozen sighs, and being a president of a temperance society, he only drinks the tepid tears of orphans.
But no more of this blubbering now, we are going a-whaling, and there is plenty of that yet to come. Let us scrape the ice from our frosted feet, and see what sort of a place this "Spouter" may be. *x* *x moby_003.html/Chapter iii - THE SPOUTER-INN*
Entering that gable-ended Spouter-Inn, you found yourself in a wide, low, straggling entry with old- fashioned wainscots, reminding one of the bulwarks of some condemned old craft. On one side hung a very large oil-painting so thoroughly besmoked, and every way defaced, that in the unequal cross-lights by which you viewed it, it was only by diligent study and a series of systematic visits to it, and careful inquiry of the neighbors, that you could any way arrive at an understanding of its purpose. such unaccountable masses of shades and shadows, that at first you almost thought some ambitious young artist, in the time of the New England hags, had endeavored to delineate chaos bewitched. But by dint of much and earnest contemplation, and oft repeated ponderings, and especially by throwing open the little window towards the back of the entry, you at last come to the conclusion that such an idea, however wild, might not be altogether unwarranted.
But what most puzzled and confounded you was a long, limber, portentous, black mass of something hovering in the
centre of the picture over three blue, dim, perpendicular lines floating in a nameless yeast. A boggy, soggy, squitchy picture truly, enough to drive a nervous man distracted. Yet was there a sort of indefinite, half-attained, unimaginable sublimity about it that fairly froze you to it, till you involuntarily took an oath with yourself to find out what that marvellous painting meant. Ever and anon a bright, but, alas, deceptive idea would dart you through. - It's the Black Sea in a midnight gale. - It's the unnatural combat of the four primal elements. - It's a blasted heath. - It's a Hyperborean winter scene. - It's the breaking- up of the ice-bound stream of Time. But at last all these fancies yielded to that one portentous something in the picture's midst. That once found out, and all the rest were plain. But stop; does it not bear a faint resemblance to a gigantic fish? even the great Leviathan himself?
In fact, the artist's design seemed this: a final theory of my own, partly based upon the aggregated opinions of many aged persons with whom I conversed upon the subject. The picture represents a Cape-Horner in a great hurricane; the half-foundered ship weltering there with its three dismantled masts alone visible; and an exasperated whale, purposing to spring clean over the craft, is in the enormous act of impaling himself upon the three mast-heads.
The opposite wall of this entry was hung all over with a heathenish array of monstrous clubs and spears. Some were thickly set with glittering teeth resembling ivory saws; others were tufted with knots of human hair; and one was sickle-shaped, with a vast handle sweeping round like the segment made in the new-mown grass by a long-armed mower. You shuddered as you gazed, and wondered what monstrous cannibal and savage could ever have gone a death-harvesting with such a hacking, horrifying implement. Mixed with these were rusty old whaling lances and harpoons all broken and deformed. Some were storied weapons. With this once long lance, now wildly elbowed, fifty years ago did Nathan Swain kill fifteen whales between a sunrise and a sunset. And that harpoon - so like a corkscrew now - was flung in Javan seas, and run away with by a whale, years afterward slain off the Cape of Blanco. The original iron entered
nigh the tail, and, like a restless needle sojourning in the body of a man, travelled full forty feet, and at last was found imbedded in the hump.
Crossing this dusky entry, and on through yon low-arched way - cut through what in old times must have been a great central chimney with fire-places all round - you enter the public room. A still duskier place is this, with such low ponderous beams above, and such old wrinkled planks beneath, that you would almost fancy you trod some old craft's cockpits, especially of such a howling night, when this corner- anchored old ark rocked so furiously. On one side stood a long, low, shelf-like table covered with cracked glass cases, filled with dusty rarities gathered from this wide world's remotest nooks. Projecting from the further angle of the room stands a dark-looking den - the bar - a rude attempt at a Right Whale's head. Be that how it may, there stands the vast arched bone of the whale's jaw, so wide, a coach might almost drive beneath it. within are shabby shelves, ranged round with old decanters, bottles, flasks; and in those jaws of swift destruction, like another cursed Jonah (by which name indeed they called him), bustles a little withered old man, who, for their money, dearly sells the sailors deliriums and death.
Abominable are the tumblers into which he pours his poison. Though true cylinders without - within, the villainous green goggling glasses deceitfully tapered downwards to a cheating bottom. Parallel meridians rudely pecked into the glass, surround these footpads' goblets. Fill to this mark, and your charge is but a penny; to this a penny more; and so on to the full glass - the Cape Horn measure, which you may gulp down for a shilling.
Upon entering the place I found a number of young seamen gathered about a table, examining by a dim light divers specimens of skrimshander. I sought the landlord, and telling him I desired to be accommodated with a room, received for answer that his house was full - not a bed unoccupied. "But avast," he added, tapping his forehead, "you haint no objections to sharing a harpooneer's blanket, have ye? I s'pose you are goin' a whalin', so you'd better get used to that sort of thing."
I told him that I never liked to sleep two in a bed; that if I should ever do so, it would depend upon who the harpooneer might be, and that if he (the landlord) really had no other place for me, and the harpooneer was not decidedly objectionable, why rather than wander further about a strange town on so bitter a night, I would put up with the half of any decent man's blanket.
"I thought so. All right; take a seat. Supper? - you want supper? Supper 'll be ready directly."
I sat down on an old wooden settle, carved all over like a bench on the Battery. At one end a ruminating tar was still further adorning it with his jack-knife, stooping over and diligently working away at the space between his legs. he was trying his hand at a ship under full sail, but he didn't make much headway, I thought.
At last some four or five of us were summoned to our meal in an adjoining room. It was cold as Iceland - no fire at all - the landlord said he couldn't afford it. Nothing but two dismal tallow candles, each in a winding sheet. We were fain to button up our monkey jackets, and hold to our lips cups of scalding tea with our half frozen fingers. But the fare was of the most substantial kind - not only meat and potatoes, but dumplings; good heavens! dumplings for supper! One young fellow in a green box coat, addressed himself to these dumplings in a most direful manner.
"My boy," said the landlord, "you'll have the nightmare to a dead sartainty."
"Landlord," I whispered, that aint the harpooneer, is it?"
"Oh, no," said he, looking a sort of diabolically funny, "the harpooneer is a dark complexioned chap. He never eats dumplings, he don't - he eats nothing but steaks, and likes 'em rare."
"The devil he does," says I. "Where is that harpooneer? Is he here?"
"He'll be here afore long," was the answer.
I could not help it, but I began to feel suspicious of this "dark complexioned" harpooneer. At any rate, I made up my mind that if it so turned out that we should sleep together, he must undress and get into bed before I did.
Supper over, the company went back to the bar-room, when, knowing not what else to do with myself, I resolved to spend the rest of the evening as a looker on.
Presently a rioting noise was heard without. Starting up, the landlord cried, "That's the Grampus's crew. I seed her reported in the offing this morning; a three years' voyage, and a full ship. Hurrah, boys; now we'll have the latest news from the Feegees."
A tramping of sea boots was heard in the entry; the door was flung open, and in rolled a wild set of mariners enough. Enveloped in their shaggy watch coats, and with their heads muffled in woollen comforters, all bedarned and ragged, and their beards stiff with icicles, they seemed an eruption of bears from Labrador. They had just landed from their boat, and this was the first house they entered. No wonder, then, that they made a straight wake for the whale's mouth - the bar - when the wrinkled little old Jonah, there officiating, soon poured them out brimmers all round. One complained of a bad cold in his head, upon which Jonah mixed him a pitch-like potion of gin and molasses, which he swore was a sovereign cure for all colds and catarrhs whatsoever, never mind of how long standing, or whether caught off the coast of Labrador, or on the weather side of an ice- island.
The liquor soon mounted into their heads, as it generally does even with the arrantest topers newly landed from sea, and they began capering about most obstreperously.
I observed, however, that one of them held somewhat aloof, and though he seemed desirous not to spoil the hilarity of his shipmates by his own sober face, yet upon the whole he refrained from making as much noise as the rest. This man interested me at once; and since the sea-gods had ordained that he should soon become my shipmate (though but a sleeping-partner one, so far as this narrative is concerned), I will here venture upon a little description of him. He stood full six feet in height, with noble shoulders, and a chest like a coffer-dam. I have seldom seen such brawn in a man. His face was deeply brown and burnt, making his white teeth dazzling by the contrast; while in the deep shadows of his eyes floated some reminiscences that did not seem to give him much joy. His voice at once announced
that he was a Southerner, and from his fine stature, I thought he must be one of those tall mountaineers from the Alleganian Ridge in Virginia. When the revelry of his companions had mounted to its height, this man slipped away unobserved, and I saw no more of him till he became my comrade on the sea. In a few minutes, however, he was missed by his shipmates, and being, it seems, for some reason a huge favorite with them, they raised a cry of "Bulkington! Bulkington! where's Bulkington?" and darted out of the house in pursuit of him.
It was now about nine o'clock, and the room seeming almost supernaturally quiet after these orgies, I began to congratulate myself upon a little plan that had occurred to me just previous to the entrance of the seamen.
No man prefers to sleep two in a bed. In fact, you would a good deal rather not sleep with your own brother. I don't know how it is, but people like to be private when they are sleeping. And when it comes to sleeping with an unknown stranger, in a strange inn, in a strange town, and that stranger a harpooneer, then your objections indefinitely multiply. Nor was there any earthly reason why I as a sailor should sleep two in a bed, more than anybody else; for sailors no more sleep two in a bed at sea, than bachelor Kings do ashore. To be sure they all sleep together in one apartment, but you have your own hammock, and cover yourself with your own blanket, and sleep in your own skin.
The more I pondered over this harpooneer, the more I abominated the thought of sleeping with him. It was fair to presume that being a harpooneer, his linen or woollen, as the case might be, would not be of the tidiest, certainly none of the finest. I began to twitch all over. Besides, it was getting late, and my decent harpooneer ought to be home and going bedwards. Suppose now, he should tumble in upon me at midnight - how could I tell from what vile hole he had been coming?
"Landlord! I've changed my mind about that harpooneer. - I shan't sleep with him. I'll try the bench here."
"Just as you please; I'm sorry i cant spare ye a tablecloth for a mattress, and it's a plaguy rough board here" - feeling of the knots and notches. "But wait a bit, Skrimshander; I've
got a carpenter's plane there in the bar - wait, I say, and I'll make ye snug enough." So saying he procured the plane; and with his old silk handkerchief first dusting the bench, vigorously set to planing away at my bed, the while grinning like an ape. The shavings flew right and left; till at last the plane-iron came bump against an indestructible knot. The landlord was near spraining his wrist, and I told him for heaven's sake to quit - the bed was soft enough to suit me, and I did not know how all the planing in the world could make eider down of a pine plank. So gathering up the shavings with another grin, and throwing them into the great stove in the middle of the room, he went about his business, and left me in a brown study.
I now took the measure of the bench, and found that it was a foot too short; but that could be mended with a chair. But it was a foot too narrow, and the other bench in the room was about four inches higher than the planed one - so there was no yoking them. I then placed the first bench lengthwise along the only clear space against the wall, leaving a little interval between, for my back to settle down in. But I soon found that there came such a draught of cold air over me from under the sill of the window, that this plan would never do at all, especially as another current from the rickety door met the one from the window, and both together formed a series of small whirlwinds in the immediate vicinity of the spot where I had thought to spend the night.
The devil fetch that harpooneer, thought I, but stop, couldn't I steal a march on him - bolt his door inside, and jump into his bed, not to be wakened by the most violent knockings? it seemed no bad idea; but upon second thoughts I dismissed it. For who could tell but what the next morning, so soon as I popped out of the room, the harpooneer might be standing in the entry, all ready to knock me down!
Still, looking around me again, and seeing no possible chance of spending a sufferable night unless in some other person's bed, I began to think that after all I might be cherishing unwarrantable prejudices against this unknown harpooneer. Thinks I, I'll wait awhile; he must be dropping in before long. I'll have a good look at him then, and perhaps we may become jolly good bedfellows after all - there's no telling.
But though the other boarders kept coming in by ones, twos, and threes, and going to bed, yet no sign of my harpooneer.
"Landlord!" said I, "what sort of a chap is he - does he always keep such late hours?" It was now hard upon twelve o'clock.
The landlord chuckled again with his lean chuckle, and seemed to be mightily tickled at something beyond my comprehension. "No," he answered, "generally he's an early bird - airley to bed and airley to rise - yes, he's the bird what catches the worm. - But to-night he went out a peddling, you see, and I don't see what on airth keeps him so late, unless, may be, he can't sell his head."
"Can't sell his head? - What sort of a bamboozingly story is this you are telling me?" getting into a towering rage. "Do you pretend to say, landlord, that this harpooneer is actually engaged this blessed Saturday night, or rather Sunday morning, in peddling his head around this town?"
"That's precisely it," said the landlord, "and I told him he couldn't sell it here, the market's overstocked."
"With what?" shouted I.
"With heads to be sure; ain't there too many heads in the world?"
"I tell you what it is, landlord," said I, quite calmly, "you'd better stop spinning that yarn to me - I'm not green."
"May be not," taking out a stick and whittling a toothpick, "but I rayther guess you'll be done brown if that ere harpooneer hears you a slanderin' his head."
"I'll break it for him," said I, now flying into a passion again at this unaccountable farrago of the landlord's.
"It's broke a'ready," said he.
"Broke," said I - "broke, do you mean?"
"Sartain, and that's the very reason he can't sell it, I guess."
"Landlord," said I, going up to him as cool as Mt. Hecla in a snow storm, - "landlord, stop whittling. You and I must understand one another, and that too without delay. I come to your house and want a bed; you tell me you can only give me half a one; that the other half belongs to a certain harpooneer. And about this harpooneer, whom I have not yet seen, you persist in telling me the most mystifying and exasperating stories, tending to beget in me an uncomfortable feeling towards the man whom
you design for my bedfellow - a sort of connexion, landlord, which is an intimate and confidential one in the highest degree. I now demand of you to speak out and tell me who and what this harpooneer is, and whether I shall be in all respects safe to spend the night with him. And in the first place, you will be so good as to unsay that story about selling his head, which if true I take to be good evidence that this harpooneer is stark mad, and I've no idea of sleeping with a madman; and you, sir, you I mean, landlord, you, sir, by trying to induce me to do so knowingly, would thereby render yourself liable to a criminal prosecution."
"Wall," said the landlord, fetching a long breath, "that's a purty long sarmon for a chap that rips a little now and then. But be easy, be easy, this here harpooneer I have been tellin' you of has just arrived from the south seas, where he bought up a lot of 'balmed New Zealand heads (great curios, you know), and he's sold all on 'em but one, and that one he's trying to sell to-night, cause to-morrow's Sunday, and it would not do to be sellin' human heads about the streets when folks is goin' to churches. He wanted to, last Sunday, but I stopped him just as he was goin' out of the door with four heads strung on a string, for all the airth like a string of inions."
This account cleared up the otherwise unaccountable mystery, and showed that the landlord, after all, had had no idea of fooling me - but at the same time what could I think of a harpooneer who stayed out a Saturday night clean into the holy Sabbath, engaged in such a cannibal business as selling the heads of dead idolators?
"Depend upon it, landlord, that harpooneer is a dangerous man."
"He pays reg'lar," was the rejoinder. "But come, it's getting dreadful late, you had better be turning flukes - it's a nice bed: Sal and me slept in that ere bed the night we were spliced. There's plenty room for two to kick about in that bed; it's an almighty big bed that. Why, afore we give it up, Sal used to put our Sam and little Johnny in the foot of it. But I got a dreaming and sprawling about one night, and somehow, Sam got pitched on the floor, and came near breaking his arm. After
that, Sal said it wouldn't do. Come along here, I'll give ye a glim in a jiffy;" and so saying he lighted a candle and held it towards me, offering to lead the way. But I stood irresolute; when looking at a clock in the corner, he exclaimed "I vum it's Sunday - you won't see that harpooneer to-night; he's come to anchor somewhere - come along then; do come; won't ye come?"
I considered the matter a moment, and then up stairs we went, and I was ushered into a small room, cold as a clam, and furnished, sure enough, with a prodigious bed, almost big enough indeed for any four harpooneers to sleep abreast.
"There," said the landlord, placing the candle on a crazy old sea chest that did double duty as a wash-stand and centre table; "there, make yourself comfortable now, and good night to ye." I turned round from eyeing the bed, but he had disappeared.
Folding back the counterpane, I stooped over the bed. Though none of the most elegant, it yet stood the scrutiny tolerably well. I then glanced round the room; and besides the bedstead and centre table, could see no other furniture belonging to the place, but a rude shelf, the four walls, and a papered fireboard representing a man striking a whale. Of things not properly belonging to the room, there was a hammock lashed up, and thrown upon the floor in one corner; also a large seaman's bag, containing the harpooneer's wardrobe, no doubt in lieu of a land trunk. Likewise, there was a parcel of outlandish bone fish hooks on the shelf over the fire- place, and a tall harpoon standing at the head of the bed.
But what is this on the chest? I took it up, and held it close to the light, and felt it, and smelt it, and tried every way possible to arrive at some satisfactory conclusion concerning it. I can compare it to nothing but a large door mat, ornamented at the edges with little tinkling tags something like the stained porcupine quills round an Indian moccasin. There was a hole or slit in the middle of this mat, as you see the same in South American ponchos. But could it be possible that any sober harpooneer would get into a door mat, and parade the streets of any Christian town in that sort of guise? I put it on, to try it, and it weighed me down like a hamper, being uncommonly shaggy and thick, and I thought a little damp, as though this
mysterious harpooneer had been wearing it of a rainy day. I went up in it to a bit of glass stuck against the wall, and I never saw such a sight in my life. I tore myself out of it in such a hurry that I gave myself a kink in the neck.
I sat down on the side of the bed, and commenced thinking about this head- peddling harpooneer, and his door mat. After thinking some time on the bed-side, I got up and took off my monkey jacket, and then stood in the middle of the room thinking. I then took off my coat, and thought a little more in my shirt sleeves. But beginning to feel very cold now, half undressed as I was, and remembering what the landlord said about the harpooneer's not coming home at all that night, it being so very late, I made no more ado, but jumped out of my pantaloons and boots, and then blowing out the light tumbled into bed, and commended myself to the care of heaven.
Whether that mattress was stuffed with corn-cobs or broken crockery, there is no telling, but I rolled about a good deal, and could not sleep for a long time. At last I slid off into a light doze, and had pretty nearly made a good offing towards the land of Nod, when I heard a heavy footfall in the passage, and saw a glimmer of light come into the room from under the door.
Lord save me, thinks I, that must be the harpooneer, the infernal head-peddler. But I lay perfectly still, and resolved not to say a word till spoken to. Holding a light in one hand, and that identical New Zealand head in the other, the stranger entered the room, and without looking towards the bed, placed his candle a good way off from me on the floor in one corner, and then began working away at the knotted cords of the large bag I before spoke of as being in the room. I was all eagerness to see his face, but he kept it averted for some time while employed in unlacing the bag's mouth. This accomplished, however, he turned round - when, good heavens! what a sight! Such a face! It was of a dark purplish, yellow color, here and there stuck over with large, blackish looking squares. Yes, it's just as I thought, he's a terrible bedfellow; he's been in a fight, got dreadfully cut, and here he is, just from the surgeon. But at that moment he chanced to turn his face so towards the light, that I plainly saw they could not be sticking-plasters at all,
those black squares on his cheeks. they were stains of some sort or other. At first I knew not what to make of this; but soon an inkling of the truth occurred to me. I remembered a story of a white man - a whaleman too - who, falling among the cannibals, had been tattooed by them. I concluded that this harpooneer, in the course of his distant voyages, must have met with a similar adventure. And what is it, thought I, after all! It's only his outside; a man can be honest in any sort of skin. But then, what to make of his unearthly complexion, that part of it, I mean, lying round about, and completely independent of the squares of tattooing. To be sure, it might be nothing but a good coat of tropical tanning; but I never heard of a hot sun's tanning a white man into a purplish yellow one. However, I had never been in the South Seas; and perhaps the sun there produced these extraordinary effects upon the skin. Now, while all these ideas were passing through me like lightning, this harpooneer never noticed me at all. But, after some difficulty having opened his bag, he commenced fumbling in it, and presently pulled out a sort of tomahawk, and a seal-skin wallet with the hair on. Placing these on the old chest in the middle of the room, he then took the New Zealand head - a ghastly thing enough - and crammed it down into the bag. He now took off his hat - a new beaver hat - when I came nigh singing out with fresh surprise. There was no hair on his head - none to speak of at least - nothing but a small scalp- knot twisted up on his forehead. His bald purplish head now looked for all the world like a mildewed skull. Had not the stranger stood between me and the door, I would have bolted out of it quicker than ever I bolted a dinner.
Even as it was, I thought something of slipping out of the window, but it was the second floor back. I am no coward, but what to make of this head-peddling purple rascal altogether passed my comprehension. Ignorance is the parent of fear, and being completely nonplussed and confounded about the stranger, i confess i was now as much afraid of him as if it was the devil himself who had thus broken into my room at the dead of night. In fact, I was so afraid of him that I was not game enough just then to address him, and demand a satisfactory answer concerning what seemed inexplicable in him.
Meanwhile, he continued the business of undressing, and at last showed his chest and arms. As I live, these covered parts of him were checkered with the same squares as his face; his back, too, was all over the same dark squares; he seemed to have been in a Thirty Years' War, and just escaped from it with a sticking- plaster shirt. Still more, his very legs were marked, as if a parcel of dark green frogs were running up the trunks of young palms. It was now quite plain that he must be some abominable savage or other shipped aboard of a whaleman in the South Seas, and so landed in this Christian country. I quaked to think of it. A peddler of heads too - perhaps the heads of his own brothers. He might take a fancy to mine - heavens! look at that tomahawk!
But there was no time for shuddering, for now the savage went about something that completely fascinated my attention, and convinced me that he must indeed be a heathen. Going to his heavy grego, or wrapall, or dreadnaught, which he had previously hung on a chair, he fumbled in the pockets, and produced at length a curious little deformed image with a hunch on its back, and exactly the color of a three days' old Congo baby. Remembering the embalmed head, at first I almost thought that this black manikin was a real baby preserved in some similar manner. But seeing that it was not at all limber, and that it glistened a good deal like polished ebony, I concluded that it must be nothing but a wooden idol, which indeed it proved to be. For now the savage goes up to the empty fireplace, and removing the papered fire-board, sets up this little hunchbacked image, like a tenpin, between the andirons. the chimney jambs and all the bricks inside were very sooty, so that I thought this fire-place made a very appropriate little shrine or chapel for his Congo idol.
I now screwed my eyes hard towards the half hidden image, feeling but ill at ease meantime - to see what was next to follow. First he takes about a double handful of shavings out of his grego pocket, and places them carefully before the idol; then laying a bit of ship biscuit on top and applying the flame from the lamp, he kindled the shavings into a sacrificial blaze. Presently, after many hasty snatches into the fire, and still hastier
withdrawals of his fingers (whereby he seemed to be scorching them badly), he at last succeeded in drawing out the biscuit; then blow)ng off the heat and ashes a little, he made a polite offer of it to the little negro. But the little devil did not seem to fancy such dry sort of fare at all; he never moved his lips. All these strange antics were accompanied by still stranger guttural noises from the devotee, who seemed to be praying in a sing-song or else singing some pagan psalmody or other, during which his face twitched about in the most unnatural manner. At last extinguishing the fire, he took the idol up very unceremoniously, and bagged it again in his grego pocket as carelessly as if he were a sportsman bagging a dead woodcock.
All these queer proceedings increased my uncomfortableness, and seeing him now exhibiting strong symptoms of concluding his business operations, and jumping into bed with me, I thought it was high time, now or never, before the light was put out, to break the spell into which I had so long been bound.
But the interval I spent in deliberating what to say, was a fatal one. Taking up his tomahawk from the table, he examined the head of it for an instant, and then holding it to the light, with his mouth at the handle, he puffed out great clouds of tobacco smoke. The next moment the light was extinguished, and this wild cannibal, tomahawk between his teeth, sprang into bed with me. I sang out, I could not help it now; and giving a sudden grunt of astonishment he began feeling me.
Stammering out something, I knew not what, I rolled away from him against the wall, and then conjured him, whoever or whatever he might be, to keep quiet, and let me get up and light the lamp again. But his guttural responses satisfied me at once that he but ill comprehended my meaning.
"Who-e debel you?" - he at last said - "you no speak-e, dam-me, I kill-e." And so saying the lighted tomahawk began flourishing about me in the dark.
"Landlord, for God's sake, Peter Coffin!" shouted I. "Landlord! Watch! Coffin! Angels! save me!"
"Speak-e! tell-ee me who-ee be, or dam- me, I kill-e!" again growled the cannibal, while his horrid flourishings of the tomahawk scattered the hot tobacco ashes about me till I thought
my linen would get on fire. But thank heaven, at that moment the landlord came into the room light in hand, and leaping from the bed I ran up to him.
"Don't be afraid now," said he, grinning again. "Queequeg here wouldn't harm a hair of your head."
"Stop your grinning," shouted I, "and why didn't you tell me that that infernal harpooneer was a cannibal?"
"I thought ye know'd it; - didn't I tell ye, he was peddlin' heads around town? - but turn flukes again and go to sleep. Queequeg, look here - you sabbee me, I sabbee you - this man sleepe you - you sabbee?" -
"Me sabbee plenty" - grunted Queequeg, puffing away at his pipe and sitting up in bed.
"You gettee in," he added, motioning to me with his tomahawk, and throwing the clothes to one side. He really did this in not only a civil but a really kind and charitable way. I stood looking at him a moment. For all his tattooings he was on the whole a clean, comely looking cannibal. What's all this fuss I have been making about, thought i to myself - the man's a human being just as I am: he has just as much reason to fear me, as I have to be afraid of him. Better sleep with a sober cannibal than a drunken Christian.
"Landlord," said I, "tell him to stash his tomahawk there, or pipe, or whatever you call it; tell him to stop smoking, in short, and I will turn in with him. But I don't fancy having a man smoking in bed with me. It's dangerous. Besides, I aint insured."
This being told to Queequeg, he at once complied, and again politely motioned me to get into bed - rolling over to one side as much as to say - I wont touch a leg of ye.
"Good night, landlord," said I, "you may go."
I turned in, and never slept better in my life. *x* *x moby_004.html/Chapter iv - THE COUNTERPANE*
Upon waking next morning about daylight, I found Queequeg's arm thrown over me in the most loving and affectionate manner. You had almost thought I had been his wife. The counterpane was of patchwork, full of odd little parti-colored squares and triangles; and this arm of his tattooed all over with an interminable Cretan labyrinth of a figure, no two parts of which were of one precise shade - owing I suppose to his keeping his arm at sea unmethodically in sun and shade, his shirt sleeves irregularly rolled up at various times - this same arm of his, I say, looked for all the world like a strip of that same patchwork quilt. Indeed, partly lying on it as the arm did when I first awoke, I could hardly tell it from the quilt, they so blended their hues together; and it was only by the sense of weight and pressure that I could tell that Queequeg was hugging me.
My sensations were strange. Let me try to explain them. When I was a child, I well remember a somewhat similar circumstance that befell me; whether it was a reality or a dream, I never could entirely settle. The circumstance was this. I had been cutting up some caper or other - I think it was trying to crawl up the chimney, as i had seen a little sweep do a few days previous; and my stepmother who, somehow or other, was all the time whipping me, or sending me to bed supperless, - my mother dragged me by the legs out of the chimney and packed me off to bed, though it was only two o'clock in the afternoon of the 21st June, the longest day in the year in our hemisphere. I felt dreadfully. But there was no help for it, so up stairs I went to my little room in the third floor, undressed myself as slowly as possible so as to kill time, and with a bitter sigh got between the sheets.
I lay there dismally calculating that sixteen entire hours must elapse before I could hope for a resurrection. Sixteen hours in
bed! the small of my back ached to think of it. And it was so light too; the sun shining in at the window, and a great rattling of coaches in the streets, and the sound of gay voices all over the house. I felt worse and worse - at last I got up, dressed, and softly going down in my stockinged feet, sought out my stepmother, and suddenly threw myself at her feet, beseeching her as a particular favor to give me a good slippering for my misbehavior; anything indeed but condemning me to lie abed such an unendurable length of time. But she was the best and most conscientious of stepmothers, and back I had to go to my room. For several hours I lay there broad awake, feeling a great deal worse than I have ever done since, even from the greatest subsequent misfortunes. At last I must have fallen into a troubled nightmare of a doze; and slowly waking from it - half steeped in dreams - I opened my eyes, and the before sun-lit room was now wrapped in outer darkness. Instantly I felt a shock running through all my frame; nothing was to be seen, and nothing was to be heard; but a supernatural hand seemed placed in mine. My arm hung over the counterpane, and the nameless, unimaginable, silent form or phantom, to which the hand belonged, s%emed closely seated by my bedside. For what seemed ages piled on ages, I lay there, frozen with the most awful fears, not daring to drag away my hand; yet ever thinking that if I could but stir it one single inch, the horrid spell would be broken. I knew not how this consciousness at last glided away from me; but waking in the morning, I shudderingly remembered it all, and for days and weeks and months afterwards I lost myself in confounding attempts to explain the mystery. Nay, to this very hour, I often puzzle myself with it.
Now, take away the awful fear, and my sensations at feeling the supernatural hand in mine were very similar, in their strangeness, to those which I experienced on waking up and seeing Queequeg's pagan arm thrown round me. But at length all the past night's events soberly recurred, one by one, in fixed reality, and then I lay only alive to the comical predicament. For though I tried to move his arm - unlock his bridegroom clasp - yet, sleeping as he was, he still hugged me tightly, as though naught but death should part us twain. I now strove to rouse him -
"Queequeg!" - but his only answer was a snore. I then rolled over, my neck feeling as if it were in a horse-collar; and suddenly felt a slight scratch. Throwing aside the counterpane, there lay the tomahawk sleeping by the savage's side, as if it were a hatchet-faced baby. A pretty pickle, truly, thought I; abed here in a strange house in the broad day, with a cannibal and a tomahawk! "Queequeg! - in the name of goodness, Queequeg, wake!" At length, by dint of much wriggling, and loud and incessant expostulations upon the unbecomingness of his hugging a fellow male in that matrimonial sort of style, I succeeded in extracting a grunt; and presently, he drew back his arm, shook himself all over like a Newfoundland dog just from the water, and sat up in bed, stiff as a pike-staff, looking at me, and rubbing his eyes as if he did not altogether remember how I came to be there, though a dim consciousness of knowing something about me seemed slowly dawning over him. Meanwhile, I lay quietly eyeing him, having no serious misgivings now, and bent upon narrowly observing so curious a creature. When, at last, his mind seemed made up touching the character of his bedfellow, and he became, as it were, reconciled to the fact; he jumped out upon the floor, and by certain signs and sounds gave me to understand that, if it pleased me, he would dress first and then leave me to dress afterwards, leaving the whole apartment to myself. Thinks I, Queequeg, under the circumstances, this is a very civilized overture; but, the truth is, these savages have an innate sense of delicacy, say what you will; it is marvellous how essentially polite they are. I pay this particular compliment to Queequeg, because he treated me with so much civility and consideration, while I was guilty of great rudeness; staring at him from the bed, and watching all his toilette motions; for the time my curiosity getting the better of my breeding. Nevertheless, a man like Queequeg you don't see every day, he and his ways were well worth unusual regarding.
He commenced dressing at top by donning his beaver hat, a very tall one, by the by, and then - still minus his trowsers - he hunted up his boots. What under the heavens he did it for, I cannot tell, but his next movement was to crush himself - boots in hand, and hat on - under the bed; when, from sundry violent
gaspings and strainings, I inferred he was hard at work booting himself; though by no law of propriety that I ever heard of, is any man required to be private when putting on his boots. But Queequeg, do you see, was a creature in the transition state - neither caterpillar nor butterfly. He was just enough civilized to show off his outlandishness in the strangest possible manner. his education was not yet completed. He was an undergraduate. If he had not been a small degree civilized, he very probably would not have troubled himself with boots at all; but then, if he had not been still a savage, he never would have dreamt of getting under the bed to put them on. At last, he emerged with his hat very much dented and crushed down over his eyes, and began creaking and limping about the room, as if, not being much accustomed to boots, his pair of damp, wrinkled cowhide ones - probably not made to order either - rather pinched and tormented him at the first go off of a bitter cold morning.
Seeing, now, that there were no curtains to the window, and that the street being very narrow, the house opposite commanded a plain view into the room, and observing more and more the indecorous figure that Queequeg made, staving about with little else but his hat and boots on; I begged him as well as I could, to accelerate his toilet somewhat, and particularly to get into his pantaloons as soon as possible. He complied, and then proceeded to wash himself. At that time in the morning any Christian would have washed his face; but Queequeg, to my amazement, contented himself with restricting his ablutions to his chest, arms, and hands. He then donned his waistcoat, and taking up a piece of hard soap on the wash-stand centre-table, dipped it into water and commenced lathering his face. I was watching to see where he kept his razor, when lo and behold, he ta+es the harpoon from the bed corner, slips out the long wooden stock, unsheathes the head, whets it a little on his boot, and striding up to the bit of mirror against the wall, begins a vigorous scraping, or rather harpooning of his cheeks. Thinks I, Queequeg, this is using Rogers's best cutlery with a vengeance. Afterwards I wondered the less at this operation when I came to know of what fine steel the head of a harpoon is made, and how exceedingly sharp the long straight edges are always kept.
The rest of his toilet was soon achieved, and he proudly marched out of the room, wrapped up in his great pilot monkey jacket, and sporting his harpoon like a marshal's baton. *x* *x moby_005.html/Chapter v - BREAKFAST*
I quickly followed suit, and descending into the bar-room accosted the grinning landlord very pleasantly. I cherished no malice towards him, though he had been skylarking with me not a little in the matter of my bedfellow.
However, a good laugh is a mighty good thing, and rather too scarce a good thing; the more's the pity. So, if any one man, in his own proper person, afford stuff for a good joke to anybody, let him not be backward, but let him cheerfully allow himself to spend and be spent in that way. And the man that has anything bountifully laughable about him, be sure there is more in that man than you perhaps think for.
The bar-room was now full of the boarders who had been dropping in the night previous, and whom I had not as yet had a good look at. They were nearly all whalemen; chief mates, and second mates, and third mates, and sea carpenters, and sea coopers, and sea blacksmiths, and harpooneers, and ship keepers; a brown and brawny company, with bosky beards; an unshorn, shaggy set, all wearing monkey jackets for morning gowns.
You could pretty plainly tell how long each one had been ashore. This young fellow's healthy cheek is like a sun-toasted pear in hue, and would seem to smell almost as musky; he cannot have been three days landed from his Indian voyage. That man next him looks a few shades lighter; you might say a touch of satin wood is in him. In the complexion of a third still lingers a tropic tawn, but slightly bleached withal; he doubtless has tarried whole weeks ashore. But who could show a cheek like
Queequeg? which, barred with various tints, seemed like the Andes' western slope, to show forth in one array, contrasting climates, zone by zone.
"Grub, ho!" now cried the landlord, flinging open a door, and in we went to breakfast.
They say that men who have seen the world, thereby become quite at ease in manner, quite self-possessed in company. Not always, though: Ledyard, the great New England traveller, and Mungo Park, the Scotch one; of all men, they possessed the least assurance in the parlor. But perhaps the mere crossing of Siberia in a sledge drawn by dogs as Ledyard did, or the taking a long solitary walk on an empty stomach, in the negro heart of Africa, which was the sum of poor Mungo's performances - this kind of travel, I say, may not be the very best mode of attaining a high social polish. Still, for the most part, that sort of thing is to be had anywhere.
These reflections just here are occasioned by the circumstance that after we were all seated at the table, and I was preparing to hear some good stories about whaling; to my no small surprise, nearly every man maintained a profound silence. And not only that, but they looked embarrassed. Yes, here were a set of sea-dogs, many of whom without the slightest bashfulness had boarded great whales on the high seas - entire strangers to them - and duelled them dead without winking; and yet, here they sat at a social breakfast table - all of the same calling, all of kindred tastes - looking round as sheepishly at each other as though they had never been out of sight of some sheepfold among the Green Mountains. A curious sight; these bashful bears, these timid warrior whalemen!
But as for Queequeg - why, Queequeg sat there among them - at the head of the table, too, it so chanced; as cool as an icicle. To be sure I cannot say much for his breeding. His greatest admirer could not have cordially justified his bringing his harpoon into breakfast with him, and using it there without ceremony; reaching over the table with it, to the imminent jeopardy of many heads, and grappling the beefsteaks towards him. But that was certainly very coolly done by him, and every
one knows that in most people's estimation, to do anything coolly is to do it genteelly.
We will not speak of all Queequeg's peculiarities here; how he eschewed coffee and hot rolls, and applied his undivided attention to beefsteaks, done rare. Enough, that when breakfast was over he withdrew like the rest into the public room, lighted his tomahawk-pipe, and was sitting there quietly digesting and smoking with his inseparable hat on, when I sallied out for a stroll. *x* *x moby_006.html/Chapter vi - THE STREET*
If I had been astonished at first catching a glimpse of so outlandish an individual as Queequeg circulating among the polite society of a civilized town, that astonishment soon departed upon taking my first daylight stroll through the streets of New Bedford.
In thoroughfares nigh the docks, any considerable seaport will frequently offer to view the queerest looking nondescripts from foreign parts. Even in Broadway and Chestnut streets, Mediterranean mariners will sometimes jostle the affrighted ladies. Regent street is not unknown to Lascars and Malays; and at Bombay, in the Apollo Green, live Yankees have often scared the natives. But New Bedford beats all Water street and Wapping. In these last-mentioned haunts you see only sailors; but in New Bedford, actual cannibals stand chatting at street corners; savages outright; many of whom yet carry on their bones unholy flesh. It makes a stranger stare.
But, besides the Feegeeans, Tongatabooarrs, Erromanggoans, Pannangians, and Brighggians, and, besides the wild specimens of the whaling-craft which unheeded reel about the streets, you will see other sights still more curious, certainly more comical.
There weekly arrive in this town scores of green Vermonters and New Hampshire men, all athirst for gain and glory in the fishery. They are mostly young, of stalwart frames; fellows who have felled forests, and now seek to drop the axe and snatch the whale-lance. Many are as green as the Green Mountains whence they came. In some things you would think them but a few hours old. Look there! that chap strutting round the corner. He wears a beaver hat and swallow-tailed coat, girdled with a sailor-belt and sheath-knife. Here comes another with a sou'-wester and a bombazine cloak.
No town-bred dandy will compare with a country-bred one - I mean a downright bumpkin dandy - a fellow that, in the dog-days, will mow his two acres in buckskin gloves for fear of tanning his hands. Now when a country dandy like this takes it into his head to make a distinguished reputation, and joins the great whale-fishery, you should see the comical things he does upon reaching the seaport. In bespeaking his sea-outfit, he orders bell-buttons to his waistcoats; straps to his canvas trowsers. Ah, poor Hay-Seed! how bitterly will burst those straps in the first howling gale, when thou art driven, straps, buttons, and all, down the throat of the tempest.
But think not that this famous town has only harpooneers, cannibals, and bumpkins to show her visitors. Not at all. Still New Bedford is a queer place. Had it not been for us whalemen, that tract of land would this day perhaps have been in as howling condition as the coast of Labrador. As it is, parts of her back country are enough to frighten one, they look so bony. The town itself is perhaps the dearest place to live in, in all New England. It is a land of oil, true enough; but not like Canaan; a land, also, of corn and wine. The streets do not run with milk; nor in the spring-time do they pave them with fresh eggs. Yet, in spite of this, nowhere in all America will you find more patrician-like houses; parks and gardens more opulent, than in New Bedford. Whence came they? how planted upon this once scraggy scoria of a country?
Go and gaze upon the iron emblematical harpoons round yonder lofty mansion, and your question will be answered. Yes; all these brave houses and flowery gardens came from the
Atlantic, Pacific, and Indian oceans. One and all, they were harpooned and dragged up hither from the bottom of the sea. Can Herr Alexander perform a feat like that?
In New Bedford, fathers, they say, give whales for dowers to their daughters, and portion off their nieces with a few porpoises a- piece. You must go to New Bedford to see a brilliant wedding; for, they say, they have reservoirs of oil in every house, and every night recklessly burn their lengths in spermaceti candles.
In summer time, the town is sweet to see; full of fine maples - long avenues of green and gold. And in August, high in air, the beautiful and bountiful horse-chestnuts, candelabra-wise, proffer the passer-by their tapering upright cones of congregated blossoms. So omnipotent is art; which in many a district of New Bedford has superinduced bright terraces of flowers upon the barren refuse rocks thrown aside at creation's final day.
And the women of New Bedford, they bloom like their own red roses. But roses only bloom in summer; whereas the fine carnation of their cheeks is perennial as sunlight in the seventh heavens. Elsewhere match that bloom of theirs, ye cannot, save in Salem, where they tell me the young girls breathe such musk, their sailor sweethearts smell them miles off shore, as though they were drawing nigh the odorous Moluccas instead of the Puritanic sands. *x* *x moby_007.html/Chapter vii - THE CHAPEL*
In this same New Bedford there stands a Whaleman's Chapel, and few are the moody fishermen, shortly bound for the Indian Ocean or Pacific, who fail to make a Sunday visit to the spot. I am sure that I did not.
Returning from my first morning stroll, I again sallied out upon this special errand. The sky had changed from clear,
sunny cold, to driving sleet and mist. Wrapping myself in my shaggy jacket of the cloth called bearskin, I fought my way against the stubborn storm. Entering, I found a small scattered congregation of sailors, and sailors' wives and widows. A muffled silence reigned, only broken at times by the shrieks of the storm. Each silent worshipper seemed purposely sitting apart from the other, as if each silent grief were insular and incommunicable. The chaplain had not yet arrived; and there these silent islands of men and women sat steadfastly eyeing several marble tablets, with black borders, masoned into the wall on either side the pulpit. Three of them ran something like the following, but I do not pretend to quote: -
Sacred To the Memory of
JOHN TALBOT,
Who, at the age of eighteen, was lost overboard
Near the Isle of Desolation, off Patagonia
November 1st, 1986.
This Tablet Is erected to his Memory
By his Sister.
Sacred To the Memory of
ROBERT LONG, WILLIS ELLERY,
NATHAN COLEMAN, WALTER CANNY,
SETH MACY, AND SAMUEL GLEIG,
Forming one of the boats' crews of
the Ship Eliza
Who were towed out of sight by a Whale,
On the Off-shore Ground in the Pacific,
December 31st, 1839.
This Marble Is here placed by their surviving
Shipmates.
Sacred To the Memory of
The late
CAPTAIN EZEKIEL HARDY,l.
Who in the bows of his boat was killed by al.
Sperm Whale on the coast of Japan,
August 3rd, 1833.
This Tablet Is erected to his Memory by
His Widow.
Shaking off the sleet from my ice-glazed hat and jacket, I seated myself near the door, and turning sideways was surprised to see Queequeg near me. Affected by the solemnity of the scene, there was a wondering gaze of incredulous curiosity in his countenance. This savage was the only person present who seemed to notice my entrance; because he was the only one who could not read, and, therefore, was not reading those frigid inscriptions on the wall. Whether any of the relatives of the seamen whose names appeared there were now among the congregation, I knew not; but so many are the unrecorded accidents in the fishery, and so plainly did several women present wear the countenance if not the trappings of some unceasing grief, that I feel sure that here before me were assembled those, in whose unhealing hearts the sight of those bleak tablets sympathetically caused the old wounds to bleed afresh.
Oh! ye whose dead lie buried beneath the green grass; who standing among flowers can say - here, here lies my beloved; ye know not the desolation that broods in bosoms like these. What bitter blanks in those black-bordered marbles which cover no ashes! What despair in those immovable inscriptions! What deadly voids and unbidden infidelities in the lines that seem to gnaw upon all Faith, and refuse resurrections to the beings who have placelessly perished without a grave. As well might those tablets stand in the cave of Elephanta as here.
In what census of living creatures, the dead of mankind are included; why it is that a universal proverb says of them, that
they tell no tales, though containing more secrets than the Goodwin Sands; how it is that to his name who yesterday departed for the other world, we prefix so significant and infidel a word, and yet do not thus entitle him, if he but embarks for the remotest Indies of this living earth; why the Life Insurance Companies pay death- forfeitures upon immortals; in what eternal, unstirring paralysis, and deadly, hopeless trance, yet lies antique Adam who died sixty round centuries ago; how it is that we still refuse to be comforted for those who we nevertheless maintain are dwelling in unspeakable bliss; why all the living so strive to hush all the dead; wherefore but the rumor of a knocking in a tomb will terrify a whole city. All these things are not without their meanings.
But Faith, like a jackal, feeds among the tombs, and even from these dead doubts she gathers her most vital hope.
It needs scarcely to be told, with what feelings, on the eve of a Nantucket voyage, I regarded those marble tablets, and by the murky light of that darkened, doleful day read the fate of the whalemen who had gone before me, Yes, Ishmael, the same fate may be thine. But somehow I grew merry again. Delightful inducements to embark, fine chance for promotion, it seems - aye, a stove boat will make me an immortal by brevet. Yes, there is death in this business of whaling - a speechlessly quick chaotic bundling of a man into Eternity. But what then? Methinks we have hugely mistaken this matter of Life and Death. Methinks that what they call my shadow here on earth is my true substance. Methinks that in looking at things spiritual, we are too much like oysters observing the sun through the water, and thinking that thick water the thinnest of air. Methinks my body is but the lees of my better being. In fact take my body who will, take it I say, it is not me. And therefore three cheers for Nantucket; and come a stove boat and stove body when they will, for stave my soul, Jove himself cannot. *x* *x moby_008.html/Chapter viii - THE PULPIT*
I had not been seated very long ere a man of a certain venerable robustness entered; immediately as the storm- pelted door flew back upon admitting him, a quick regardful eyeing of him by all the congregation, sufficiently attested that this fine old man was the chaplain. Yes, it was the famous Father Mapple, so called by the whalemen, among whom he was a very great favorite. He had been a sailor and a harpooneer in his youth, but for many years past had dedicated his life to the ministry. At the time I now write of, Father Mapple was in the hardy winter of a healthy old age; that sort of old age which seems merging into a second flowering youth, for among all the fissures of his wrinkles, there shone certain mild gleams of a newly developing bloom - the spring verdure peeping forth even beneath February's snow. No one having previously heard his history, could for the first time behold Father Mapple without the utmost interest, because there were certain engrafted clerical peculiarities about him, imputable to that adventurous maritime life he had led. When he entered I observed that he carried no umbrella, and certainly had not come in his carriage, for his tarpaulin hat ran down with melting sleet, and his great pilot cloth jacket seemed almost to drag him to the floor with the weight of the water it had absorbed. However, hat and coat and overshoes were one by one removed, and hung up in a little space in an adjacent corner; when, arrayed in a decent suit, he quietly approached the pulpit.
Like most old fashioned pulpits, it was a very lofty one, and since a regular stairs to such a height would, by its long angle with the floor, seriously contract the already small area of the chapel, the architect, it seemed, had acted upon the hint of Father Mapple, and finished the pulpit without a stairs, substituting a perpendicular side ladder, like those used in mounting
a ship from a boat at sea. The wife of a whaling captain had provided the chapel with a handsome pair of red worsted man-ropes for this ladder, which, being itself nicely headed, and stained with a mahogany color, the whole contrivance, considering what manner of chapel it was, seemed by no means in bad taste. Halting for an instant at the foot of the ladder, and with both hands grasping the ornamental knobs of the man-ropes, Father Mapple cast a look upwards, and then with a truly sailorlike but still reverential dexterity, hand over hand, mounted the steps as if ascending the main-top of his vessel.
The perpendicular parts of this side ladder, as is usually the case with swinging ones, were of cloth-covered rope, only the rounds were of wood, so that at every step there was a joint. At my first glimpse of the pulpit, it had not escaped me that however convenient for a ship, these joints in the present instance seemed unnecessary. For I was not prepared to see Father Mapple after gaining the height, slowly turn round, and stooping over the pulpit, deliberately drag up the ladder step by step, till the whole was deposited within, leaving him impregnable in his little Quebec.
I pondered some time without fully comprehending the reason for this. Father Mapple enjoyed such a wide reputation for sincerity and sanctity, that I could not suspect him of courting notoriety by any mere tricks of the stage. No, thought I, there must be some sober reason for this thing; furthermore, it must symbolize something unseen. Can it be, then, that by that act of physical isolation, he signifies his spiritual withdrawal for the time, from all outward worldly ties and connexions? Yes, for replenished with the meat and wine of the word, to the faithful man of God, this pulpit, I see, is a self- containing stronghold - a lofty Ehrenbreitstein, with a perennial well of water within the walls.
But the side ladder was not the only strange feature of the place, borrowed from the chaplain's former sea-farings. Between the marble cenotaphs on either hand of the pulpit, the wall which formed its back was adorned with a large painting representing a gallant ship beating against a terrible storm off a lee coast of black rocks and snowy breakers. But high above the
flying scud and dark-rolling clouds, there floated a little isle of sunlight, from which beamed forth an angel's face; and this bright face shed a distinct spot of radiance upon the ship's tossed deck, something like that silver plate now inserted into the Victory's plank where Nelson fell. "Ah, noble ship," the angel seemed to say, "beat on, beat on, thou noble ship, and bear a hardy helm; for lo! the sun is breaking through; the clouds are rolling off - serenest azure is at hand."
Nor was the pulpit itself without a trace of the same sea-taste that had achieved the ladder and the picture. Its panelled front was in the likeness of a ship's bluff bows, and the Holy Bible rested on the projecting piece of scroll work, fashioned after a ship's fiddle-headed beak.
What could be more full of meaning? - for the pulpit is ever this earth's foremost part; all the rest comes in its rear; the pulpit leads the world. From thence it is the storm of God's quick wrath is first descried, and the bow must bear the earliest brunt. From thence it is the God of breezes fair or foul is first invoked for favorable winds. Yes, the world's a ship on its passage out, and not a voyage complete; and the pulpit is its prow. *x* *x moby_009.html/Chapter ix - THE SERMON*
Father Mapple rose, and in a mild voice of unassuming authority ordered the scattered people to condense. "Starboard gangway, there! side away to larboard - larboard gangway to starboard! Midships! midships!"
There was a low rumbling of heavy sea-boots among the benches, and a still slighter shuffling of women's shoes, and all was quiet again, and every eye on the preacher.
He paused a little; then kneeling in the pulpit's bows, folded his large brown hands across his chest, uplifted his closed eyes,
and offered a prayer so deeply devout that he seemed kneeling and praying at the bottom of the sea.
This ended, in prolonged solemn tones, like the continual tolling of a bell in a ship that is foundering at sea in a fog - in such tones he commenced reading the following hymn; but changing his manner towards the concluding stanzas, burst forth with a pealing exultation and joy -
"The ribs and terrors in the whale,
Arched over me a dismal gloom,
While all God's sun-lit waves rolled by,
And lift me deepening down to doom.
"I saw the opening maw of hell,
With endless pains and sorrows there;
Which none but they that feel can tell -
Oh, I was plunging to despair.
"In black distress, I called my God,
When I could scarce believe him mine,
He bowed his ear to my complaints -
No more the whale did me confine.
With speed he flew to my relief,
As on a radiant dolphin borne;
Awful, yet bright, as lightning shone
The face of my Deliverer God.
"My song for ever shall record
That terrible, that joyful hour;
I give the glory to my God,
His all the mercy and the power."
Nearly all joined in singing this hymn, which swelled high above the howling of the storm. A brief pause ensued; the preacher slowly turned over the leaves of the Bible, and at last, folding his hand down upon the proper page, said: "Beloved shipmates, clinch the last verse of the first chapter of Jonah - "And God had prepared a great fish to swallow up Jonah."
"Shipmates, this book, containing only four chapters - four yarns - is one of the smallest strands in the mighty cable of the Scriptures. Yet what depths of the soul does Jonah's deep sealine sound! what a pregnant lesson to us is this prophet! What
a noble thing is that canticle in the fish's belly! How billow- like and boisterously grand! We feel the floods surging over us; we sound with him to the kelpy bottom of the waters; sea-weed and all the slime of the sea is about us! But what is this lesson that the book of Jonah teaches? Shipmates, it is a two- stranded lesson; a lesson to us all as sinful men, and a lesson to me as a pilot of the living God. As sinful men, it is a lesson to us all, because it is a story of the sin, hard-heartedness, suddenly awakened fears, the swift punishment, repentance, prayers, and finally the deliverance and joy of Jonah. As with all sinners among men, the sin of this son of Amittai was in his wilful disobedience of the command of God - never mind now what that command was, or how conveyed - which he found a hard command. But all the things that God would have us do are hard for us to do - remember that - and hence, he oftener commands us than endeavors to persuade. And if we obey God, we must disobey ourselves; and it is in this disobeying ourselves, wherein the hardness of obeying God consists.
"With this sin of disobedience in him, Jonah still further flouts at God, by seeking to flee from Him. He thinks that a ship made by men, will carry him into countries where God does not reign, but only the Captains of this earth. He skulks about the wharves of Joppa, and seeks a ship that's bound for Tarshish. There lurks, perhaps, a hitherto unheeded meaning here. By all accounts Tarshish could have been no other city than the modern Cadiz. That's the opinion of learned men. And where is Cadiz, shipmates? Cadiz is in Spain; as far by water, from Joppa, as Jonah could possibly have sailed in those ancient days, when the Atlantic was an almost unknown sea. Because Joppa, the modern Jaffa, shipmates, is on the most easterly coast of the Mediterranean, the Syrian; and Tarshish or Cadiz more than two thousand miles to the westward from that, just outside the Straits of Gibraltar. See ye not then, shipmates, that Jonah sought to flee world-wide from God? Miserable man! Oh! most contemptible and worthy of all scorn; with slouched hat and guilty eye, skulking from his God; prowling among the shipping like a vile burglar hastening to cross the seas. So disordered, self-condemning is his look, that had there been policemen in
those days, Jonah, on the mere suspicion of something wrong, had been arrested ere he touched a deck. How plainly he's a fugitive! no baggage, not a hat-box, valise, or carpet-bag, - no friends accompany him to the wharf with their adieux. At last, after much dodging search, he finds the Tarshish ship receiving the last items of her cargo; and as he steps on board to see its Captain in the cabin, all the sailors for the moment desist from hoisting in the goods, to mark the stranger's evil eye. Jonah sees this; but in vain he tries to look all ease and confidence; in vain essays his wretched smile. Strong intuitions of the man assure the mariners he can be no innocent. In their gamesome but still serious way, one whispers to the other - "Jack, he's robbed a widow;" or,"Joe, do you mark him; he's a bigamist;" or,"Harry lad, I guess he's the adulterer that broke jail in old Gomorrah, or belike, one of the missing murderers from Sodom." Another runs to read the bill that's stuck against the spile upon the wharf to which the ship is moored, offering five hundred gold coins for the apprehension of a parricide, and containing a description of his person. He reads, and looks from Jonah to the bill; while all his sympathetic shipmates now crowd round Jonah, prepared to lay their hands upon him. Frighted Jonah trembles, and summoning all his boldness to his face, only looks so much the more a coward. He will not confess himself suspected; but that itself is strong suspicion. So he makes the best of it; and when the sailors find him not to be the man that is advertised, they let him pass, and he descends into the cabin.
""Who's there?" cries the Captain at his busy desk, hurriedly making out his papers for the Customs - "Who's there?" Oh! how that harmless question mangles Jonah! For the instant he almost turns to flee again. But he rallies. "I seek a passage in this ship to Tarshish; how soon sail ye, sir?" Thus far the busy captain had not looked up to Jonah, though the man now stands before him; but no sooner does he hear that hollow voice, than he darts a scrutinizing glance. "We sail with the next coming tide," at last he slowly answered, still intently eyeing him. "No sooner, sir?" - "Soon enough for any honest man that goes a passenger." Ha! Jonah, that's another stab. But he swiftly calls away the Captain from that scent. "I'll sail with ye," - he says, - "the passage
money, how much is that, - I'll pay now." For it is particularly written, shipmates, as if it were a thing not to be overlooked in this history,"that he paid the fare thereof" ere the craft did sail. And taken with the context, this is full of meaning.
"Now Jonah's Captain, shipmates, was one whose discernment detects crime in any, but whose cupidity exposes it only in the penniless. In this world, shipmates, sin that pays its way can travel freely, and without a passport; whereas Virtue, if a pauper, is stopped at all frontiers. So Jonah's Captain prepares to test the length of Jonah's purse, ere he judge him openly. He charges him thrice the usual sum; and it's assented to. Then the Captain knows that Jonah is a fugitive; but at the same time resolves to help a flight that paves its rear with gold. Yet when Jonah fairly takes out his purse, prudent suspicions still molest the Captain. He rings every coin to find a counterfeit. Not a forger, any way, he mutters; and Jonah is put down for his passage. "Point out my state-room, Sir," says Jonah now. "I'm travel-weary; I need sleep." "Thou look'st like it," says the Captain, "there's thy room." Jonah enters, and would lock the door, but the lock contains no key. Hearing him foolishly fumbling there, the Captain laughs lowly to himself, and mutters something about the doors of convicts' cells being never allowed to be locked within. All dressed and dusty as he is, Jonah throws himself into his berth, and finds the little state-room ceiling almost resting on his forehead. The air is close, and Jonah gasps. then, in that contracted hole, sunk, too, beneath the ship's water-line, Jonah feels the heralding presentiment of that stifling hour, when the whale shall hold him in the smallest of his bowel's wards.
"Screwed at its axis against the side, a swinging lamp slightly oscillates in Jonah's room; and the ship, heeling over towards the wharf with the weight of the last bales received, the lamp, flame and all, though in slight motion, still maintains a permanent obliquity with reference to the room; though, in truth, infallibly straight itself, it but made obvious the false, lying levels among which it hung. The lamp alarms and frightens Jonah; as lying in his berth his tormented eyes roll round the place, and this thus far successful fugitive finds no refuge for his restless glance. But that contradiction in the lamp more and
more appals him. The floor, the ceiling, and the side, are all awry. "Oh! so my conscience hangs in me!" he groans, "straight upward, so it burns; but the chambers of my soul are all in crookedness!"
"Like one who after a night of drunken revelry hies to his bed, still reeling, but with conscience yet pricking him, as the plungings of the Roman race- horse but so much the more strike his steel tags into him; as one who in that miserable plight still turns and turns in giddy anguish, praying God for annihilation until the fit be passed; and at last amid the whirl of woe he feels, a deep stupor steals over him, as over the man who bleeds to death, for conscience is the wound, and there's naught to staunch it; so, after sore wrestlings in his berth, Jonah's prodigy of ponderous misery drags him drowning down to sleep.
"And now the time of tide has come; the ship casts off her cables; and from the deserted wharf the uncheered ship for Tarshish, all careening, glides to sea. That ship, my friends, was the first of recorded smugglers! the contraband was Jonah. but the sea rebels; he will not bear the wicked burden. A dreadful storm comes on, the ship is like to break. But now when the boatswain calls all hands to lighten her; when boxes, bales, and jars are clattering overboard; when the wind is shrieking, and the men are yelling, and every plank thunders with trampling feet right over Jonah's head; in all this raging tumult, Jonah sleeps his hideous sleep. He sees no black sky and raging sea, feels not the reeling timbers, and little hears he or heeds he the far rush of the mighty whale, which even now with open mouth is cleaving the seas after him. Aye, shipmates, Jonah was gone down into the sides of the ship - a berth in the cabin as I have taken it, and was fast asleep. But the frightened master comes to him, and shrieks in his dead ear, "What meanest thou, O sleeper! arise!" Startled from his lethargy by that direful cry, Jonah staggers to his feet, and stumbling to the deck, grasps a shroud, to look out upon the sea. But at that moment he is sprung upon by a panther billow leaping over the bulwarks. Wave after wave thus leaps into the ship, and finding no speedy vent runs roaring fore and aft, till the mariners come nigh to drowning while yet afloat. And ever, as the white moon shows
her affrighted face from the steep gullies in the blackness overhead, aghast Jonah sees the rearing bowsprit pointing high upward, but soon beat downward again towards the tormented deep.
"Terrors upon terrors run shouting through his soul. In all his cringing attitudes, the God-fugitive is now too plainly known. The sailors mark him; more and more certain grow their suspicions of him, and at last, fully to test the truth, by referring the whole matter to high Heaven, they fall to casting lots, to see for whose cause this great tempest was upon them. The lot is Jonah's; that discovered, then how furiously they mob him with their questions. "What is thine occupation? whence comest thou? thy country? what people?" but mark now, my shipmates, the behavior of poor Jonah. The eager mariners but ask him who he is, and where from; whereas, they not only receive an answer to those questions, but likewise another answer to a question not put by them, but the unsolicited answer is forced from Jonah by the hard hand of God that is upon him.
""I am a Hebrew," he cries - and then - "I fear the Lord the God of Heaven who hath made the sea and the dry land!" Fear him, O Jonah? Aye, well mightest thou fear the Lord God then! Straightway, he now goes on to make a full confession; whereupon the mariners became more and more appalled, but still are pitiful. For when Jonah, not yet supplicating God for mercy, since he but too well knew the darkness of his deserts, - when wretched Jonah cries out to them to take him and cast him forth into the sea, for he knew that for his sake this great tempest was upon them; they mercifully turn from him, and seek by other means to save the ship. But all in vain; the indignant gale howls louder; then, with one hand raised invokingly to God, with the other they not unreluctantly lay hold of Jonah.
"And now behold Jonah taken up as an anchor and dropped into the sea; when instantly an oily calmness floats out from the east, and the sea is still, as Jonah carries down the gale with him, leaving smooth water behind. He goes down in the whirling heart of such a masterless commotion that he scarce heeds the moment when he drops seething into the yawning jaws
awaiting him; and the whale shoots-to all his ivory teeth, like the Lord out of the fish's belly. But observe his prayer, and so many white bolts, upon his prison. Then Jonah prayed unto learn a weighty lesson. For sinful as he is, Jonah does not weep and wail for direct deliverance. He feels that his dreadful punishment is just. He leaves all his deliverance to God, contenting himself with this, that spite of all his pains and pangs, he will still look towards His holy temple. And here, shipmates, is true and faithful repentance; not clamorous for pardon, but grateful for punishment. And how pleasing to God was this conduct in Jonah, is shown in the eventual deliverance of him from the sea and the whale. Shipmates, I do not place Jonah before you to be copied for his sin but I do place him before you as a model for repentance. Sin not; but if you do, take heed to repent of it like Jonah."
While he was speaking these words, the howling of the shrieking, slanting storm without seemed to add new power to the preacher, who, when describing Jonah's sea-storm, seemed tossed by a storm himself. His deep chest heaved as with a ground-swell; his tossed arms seemed the warring elements at work; and the thunders that rolled away from off his swarthy brow, and the light leaping from his eye, made all his simple hearers look on him with a quick fear that was strange to them.
There now came a lull in his look, as he silently turned over the leaves of the Book once more; and, at last, standing motionless, with closed eyes, for the moment, seemed communing with God and himself.
But again he leaned over towards the people, and bowing his head lowly, with an aspect of the deepest yet manliest humility, he spake these words: "Shipmates, God has laid but one hand upon you; both his hands press upon me. I have read ye by what murky light may be mine the lesson that Jonah teaches to all sinners; and therefore to ye, and still more to me, for I am a greater sinner than ye. And now how gladly would I come down from this mast-head and sit on the hatches there where you sit, and listen as you listen, while some one of you reads me that other and more awful lesson which Jonah teaches to me as a pilot of
the living God. How being an anointed pilot-prophet, or speaker of true things, and bidden by the Lord to sound those unwelcome truths in the ears of a wicked Nineveh, Jonah, appalled at the hostility he should raise, fled from his mission, and sought to escape his duty and his God by taking ship at Joppa. But God is everywhere; Tarshish he never reached. As we have seen, God came upon him in the whale, and swallowed him down to living gulfs of doom, and with swift slantings tore him along"into the midst of the seas," where the eddying depths sucked him ten thousand fathoms down, and"the weeds were wrapped about his head," and all the watery world of woe bowled over him. Yet even then beyond the reach of any plummet - "out of the belly of hell" - when the whale grounded upon the ocean's utmost bones, even then, God heard the engulphed, repenting prophet when he cried. Then God spake unto the fish; and from the shuddering cold and blackness of the sea, the whale came breeching up towards the warm and pleasant sun, and all the delights of air and earth; and"vomited out Jonah upon the dry land;" when the word of the Lord came a second time; and Jonah, bruised and beaten - his ears, like two sea-shells, still multitudinously murmuring of the ocean - Jonah did the Almighty's bidding. And what was that, shipmates? To preach the Truth to the face of Falsehood! That was it!
"This, shipmates, this is that other lesson; and woe to that pilot of the living God who slights it. Woe to him whom this world charms from Gospel duty! Woe to him who seeks to pour oil upon the waters when God has brewed them into a gale! Woe to him who seeks to please rather than to appal! Woe to him whose good name is more to him than goodness! Woe to him who, in this world, courts not dishonor! Woe to him who would not be true, even though to be false were salvation! Yea, woe to him who, as the great Pilot Paul has it, while preaching to others is himself a castaway!"
He drooped and fell away from himself for a moment; then lifting his face to them again, showed a deep joy in his eyes, as he cried out with a heavenly enthusiasm, - "But oh! shipmates! on the starboard hand of every woe, there is a sure delight; and higher the top of that delight, than the bottom of the woe is
deep. Is not the main-truck higher than the kelson is low? Delight is to him - a far, far upward, and inward delight - who against the proud gods and commodores of this earth, ever stands forth his own inexorable self. Delight is to him whose strong arms yet support him, when the ship of this base treacherous world has gone down beneath him. Delight is to him, who gives no quarter in the truth, and kills, burns, and destroys all sin though he pluck it out from under the robes of Senators and Judges. Delight, - top-gallant delight is to him, who acknowledges no law or lord, but the Lord his God, and is only a patriot to heaven. Delight is to him, whom all the waves of the billows of the seas of the boisterous mob can never shake from this sure Keel of the Ages. And eternal delight and deliciousness will be his, who coming to lay him down, can say with his final breath - O Father! - chiefly known to me by Thy rod - mortal or immortal, here I die. I have striven to be Thine, more than to be this world's, or mine own. Yet this is nothing; I leave eternity to Thee; for what is man that he should live out the lifetime of his God?"
He said no more, but slowly waving a benediction, covered his face with his hands, and so remained kneeling, till all the people had departed, and he was left alone in the place. *x* *x moby_010.html/Chapter x - A BOSOM FRIEND*
Returning to the Spouter-Inn from the Chapel, I found Queequeg there quite alone; he having left the Chapel before the benediction some time. He was sitting on a bench before the fire, with his feet on the stove hearth, and in one hand was holding close up to his face that little negro idol of his; peering hard into its face, and with a jack-knife gently whittling away at its nose, meanwhile humming to himself in his heathenish way.
But being now interrupted, he put up the image; and pretty
soon, going to the table, took up a large book there, and placing it on his lap began counting the pages with deliberate regularity; at every fiftieth page - as I fancied - stopping a moment, looking vacantly around him, and giving utterance to a long-drawn gurgling whistle of astonishment. He would then begin again at the next fifty; seeming to commence at number one each time, as though he could not count more than fifty, and it was only by such a large number of fifties being found together, that his astonishment at the multitude of pages was excited.
With much interest I sat watching him. Savage though he was, and hideously marred about the face - at least to my taste - his countenance yet had a something in it which was by no means disagreeable. You cannot hide the soul. Through all his unearthly tattooings, I thought I saw the traces of a simple honest heart; and in his large, deep eyes, fiery black and bold, there seemed tokens of a spirit that would dare a thousand devils. And besides all this, there was a certain lofty bearing about the Pagan, which even his uncouthness could not altogether maim. He looked like a man who had never cringed and never had had a creditor. Whether it was, too, that his head being shaved, his forehead was drawn out in freer and brighter relief, and looked more expansive than it otherwise would, this I will not venture to decide; but certain it was his head was phrenologically an excellent one. It may seem ridiculous, but it reminded me of General Washington's head, as seen in the popular busts of him. It had the same long regularly graded retreating slope from above the brows, which were likewise very projecting, like two long promontories thickly wooded on top. Queequeg was George Washington cannibalistically developed.
Whilst I was thus closely scanning him, half-pretending meanwhile to be looking out at the storm from the casement, he never heeded my presence, never troubled himself with so much as a single glance; but appeared wholly occupied with counting the pages of the marvellous book. Considering how sociably we had been sleeping together the night previous, and especially considering the affectionate arm I had found thrown over me upon waking in the morning, I thought this indifference of his
very strange. But savages are strange beings; at times you do not know exactly how to take them. At first they are overawing; their calm self-collectedness of simplicity seems a Socratic wisdom. I had noticed also that Queequeg never consorted at all, or but very little, with the other seamen in the inn. He made no advances whatever; appeared to have no desire to enlarge the circle of his acquaintances. All this struck me as mighty singular; yet, upon second thoughts, there was something almost sublime in it. Here was a man some twenty thousand miles from home, by the way of Cape Horn, that is - which was the only way he could get there - thrown among people as strange to him as though he were in the planet Jupiter; and yet he seemed entirely at his ease; preserving the utmost serenity; content with his own companionship; always equal to himself. Surely this was a touch of fine philosophy; though no doubt he had never heard there was such a thing as that. But, perhaps, to be true philosophers, we mortals should not be conscious of so living or so striving. So soon as I hear that such or such a man gives himself out for a philosopher, I conclude that, like the dyspeptic old woman, he must have "broken his digester."
As I sat there in that now lonely room; the fire burning low, in that mild stage when, after its first intensity has warmed the air, it then only glows to be looked at; the evening shades and phantoms gathering round the casements, and peering in upon us silent, solitary twain; the storm booming without in solemn swells; I began to be sensible of strange feelings. I felt a melting in me. No more my splintered heart and maddened hand were turned against the wolfish world. This soothing savage had redeemed it. There he sat, his very indifference speaking a nature in which there lurked no civilized hypocrisies and bland deceits. Wild he was; a very sight of sights to see; yet I began to feel myself mysteriously drawn towards him. And those same things that would have repelled most others, they were the very magnets that thus drew me. I'll try a pagan friend, thought I, since Christian kindness has proved but hollow courtesy. I drew my bench near him, and made some friendly signs and hints, doing my best to talk with him meanwhile. At first he little noticed these advances; but presently, upon my referring to his last
night's hospitalities, he made out to ask me whether we were again to be bedfellows. I told him yes; whereat I thought he looked pleased, perhaps a little complimented.
We then turned over the book together, and I endeavored to explain to him the purpose of the printing, and the meaning of the few pictures that were in it. Thus I soon engaged his interest; and from that we went to jabbering the best we could about the various outer sights to be seen in this famous town. Soon I proposed a social smoke; and, producing his pouch and tomahawk, he quietly offered me a puff. And then we sat exchanging puffs from that wild pipe of his, and keeping it regularly passing between us.
If there yet lurked any ice of indifference towards me in the Pagan's breast, this pleasant, genial smoke we had, soon thawed it out, and left us cronies. He seemed to take to me quite as naturally and unbiddenly as I to him; and when our smoke was over, he pressed his forehead against mine, clasped me round the waist, and said that henceforth we were married; meaning, in his country's phrase, that we were bosom friends; he would gladly die for me, if need should be. In a countryman, this sudden flame of friendship would have seemed far too premature, a thing to be much distrusted; but in this simple savage those old rules would not apply.
After supper, and another social chat and smoke, we went to our room together. He made me a present of his embalmed head; took out his enormous tobacco wallet, and groping under the tobacco, drew out some thirty dollars in silver; then spreading them on the table, and mechanically dividing them into two equal portions, pushed one of them towards me, and said it was mine. I was going to remonstrate; but he silenced me by pouring them into my trowsers' pockets. I let them stay. He then went about his evening prayers, took out his idol, and removed the paper fireboard. By certain signs and symptoms, I thought he seemed anxious for me to join him; but well knowing what was to follow, I deliberated a moment whether, in case he invited me, I would comply or otherwise.
I was a good Christian; born and bred in the bosom of the infallible Presbyterian Church. How then could I unite with
this wild idolator in worshipping his piece of wood? But what is worship? thought I. Do you suppose now, Ishmael, that the magnanimous God of heaven and earth - pagans and all included - can possibly be jealous of an insignificant bit of black wood? Impossible! But what is worship? - to do the will of God - that is worship. And what is the will of God? - to do to my fellow man what I would have my fellow man to do to me - that is the will of God. Now, Queequeg is my fellow man. And what do I wish that this Queequeg would do to me? Why, unite with me in my particular Presbyterian form of worship. consequently, i must then unite with him in his; ergo, I must turn idolator. So I kindled the shavings; helped prop up the innocent little idol; offered him burnt biscuit with Queequeg; salamed before him twice or thrice; kissed his nose; and that done, we undressed and went to bed, at peace with our own consciences and all the world. But we did not go to sleep without some little chat.
How it is I know not; but there is no place like a bed for confidential disclosures between friends. Man and wife, they say, there open the very bottom of their souls to each other; and some old couples often lie and chat over old times till nearly morning. Thus, then, in our hearts' honeymoon, lay I and Queequeg - a cosy, loving pair. *x* *x moby_011.html/Chapter xi - NIGHTGOWN*
We had lain thus in bed, chatting and napping at short intervals, and Queequeg now and then affectionately throwing his brown tattooed legs over mine, and then drawing them back; so entirely sociable and free and easy were we; when, at last, by reason of our confabulations, what little nappishness remained in us altogether departed, and we felt like getting up again, though day-break was yet some way down the future.
Yes, we became very wakeful; so much so that our recumbent
position began to grow wearisome, and by little and little we found ourselves sitting up; the clothes well tucked around us, leaning against the head-board with our four knees drawn up close together, and our two noses bending over them, as if our knee-pans were warming-pans. We felt very nice and snug, the more so since it was so chilly out of doors; indeed out of bed-clothes too, seeing that there was no fire in the room. The more so, I say, because truly to enjoy bodily warmth, some small part of you must be cold, for there is no quality in this world that is not what it is merely by contrast. Nothing exists in itself. If you flatter yourself that you are all over comfortable, and have been so a long time, then you cannot be said to be comfortable any more. But if, like Queequeg and me in the bed, the tip of your nose or the crown of your head be slightly chilled, why then, indeed, in the general consciousness you feel most delightfully and unmistakably warm. For this reason a sleeping apartment should never be furnished with a fire, which is one of the luxurious discomforts of the rich. For the height of this sort of deliciousness is to have nothing but the blanket between you and your snugness and the cold of the outer air. Then there you lie like the one warm spark in the heart of an arctic crystal.
We had been sitting in this crouching manner for some time, when all at once I thought I would open my eyes; for when between sheets, whether by day or by night, and whether asleep or awake, I have a way of always keeping my eyes shut, in order the more to concentrate the snugness of being in bed. Because no man can ever feel his own identity aright except his eyes be closed; as if darkness were indeed the proper element of our essences, though light be more congenial to our clayey part. Upon opening my eyes then, and coming out of my own pleasant and self-created darkness into the imposed and coarse outer gloom of the unilluminated twelve-o'clock-at-night, I experienced a disagreeable revulsion. Nor did I at all object to the hint from Queequeg that perhaps it were best to strike a light, seeing that we were so wide awake; and besides he felt a strong desire to have a few quiet puffs from his Tomahawk. Be it said, that though I had felt such a strong repugnance to his smoking in
the bed the night before, yet see how elastic our stiff prejudices grow when love once comes to bend them. For now I liked nothing better than to have Queequeg smoking by me, even in bed, because he seemed to be full of such serene household joy then. I no more felt unduly concerned for the landlord's policy of insurance. I was only alive to the condensed confidential comfortableness of sharing a pipe and a blanket with a real friend. With our shaggy jackets drawn about our shoulders, we now passed the Tomahawk from one to the other, till slowly there grew over us a blue hanging tester of smoke, illuminated by the flame of the new-lit lamp.
Whether it was that this undulating tester rolled the savage away to far distant scenes, I know not, but he now spoke of his native island; and, eager to hear his history, I begged him to go on and tell it. He gladly complied. Though at the time I but ill comprehended not a few of his words, yet subsequent disclosures, when I had become more familiar with his broken phraseology, now enable me to present the whole story such as it may prove in the mere skeleton I give. *x* *x moby_012.html/Chapter xii - BIOGRAPHICAL*
Queequeg was a native of Kokovoko, an island far away to the West and South. It is not down in any map; true places never are.
When a new-hatched savage running wild about his native woodlands in a grass clout, followed by the nibbling goats, as if he were a green sapling; even then, in Queequeg's ambitious soul, lurked a strong desire to see something more of Christendom than a specimen whaler or two. His father was a High Chief, a King; his uncle a High Priest; and on the maternal side he boasted aunts who were the wives of unconquerable warriors. There was excellent blood in his veins - royal stuff; though
sadly vitiated, I fear, by the cannibal propensity he nourished in his untutored youth.
A Sag Harbor ship visited his father's bay, and Queequeg sought a passage to Christian lands. But the ship, having her full complement of seamen, spurned his suit; and not all the King his father's influence could prevail. But Queequeg vowed a vow. Alone in his canoe, he paddled off to a distant strait, which he knew the ship must pass through when she quitted the island. On one side was a coral reef; on the other a low tongue of land, covered with mangrove thickets that grew out into the water. Hiding his canoe, still afloat, among these thickets, with its prow seaward, he sat down in the stern, paddle low in hand; and when the ship was gliding by, like a flash he darted out; gained her side; with one backward dash of his foot capsized and sank his canoe; climbed up the chains; and throwing himself at full length upon the deck, grappled a ringbolt there, and swore not to let it go, though hacked in pieces.
In vain the captain threatened to throw him overboard; suspended a cutlass over his naked wrists; Queequeg was the son of a King, and Queequeg budged not. Struck by his desperate dauntlessness, and his wild desire to visit Christendom, the captain at last relented, and told him he might make himself at home. But this fine young savage - this sea Prince of Wales, never saw the captain's cabin. They put him down among the sailors, and made a whaleman of him. But like Czar Peter content to toil in the shipyards of foreign cities, Queequeg disdained no seeming ignominy, if thereby he might happily gain the power of enlightening his untutored countrymen. For at bottom - so he told me - he was actuated by a profound desire to learn among the Christians, the arts whereby to make his people still happier than they were; and more than that, still better than they were. But, alas! the practices of whalemen soon convinced him that even Christians could be both miserable and wicked; infinitely more so, than all his father's heathens. Arrived at last in old Sag Harbor; and seeing what the sailors did there; and then going on to Nantucket, and seeing how they spent their wages in that place also, poor Queequeg gave it up for lost. Thought he, it's a wicked world in all meridians; I'll die a pagan.
And thus an old idolator at heart, he yet lived among these Christians, wore their clothes, and tried to talk their gibberish. Hence the queer ways about him, though now some time from home.
By hints, I asked him whether he did not propose going back, and having a coronation; since he might now consider his father dead and gone, he being very old and feeble at the last accounts. He answered no, not yet; and added that he was fearful Christianity, or rather Christians, had unfitted him for ascending the pure and undefiled throne of thirty pagan Kings before him. But by and by, he said, he would return, - as soon as he felt himself baptized again. For the nonce, however, he proposed to sail about, and sow his wild oats in all four oceans. They had made a harpooneer of him, and that barbed iron was in lieu of a sceptre now.
I asked him what might be his immediate purpose, touching his future movements. He answered, to go to sea again, in his old vocation. Upon this, I told him that whaling was my own design, and informed him of my intention to sail out of Nantucket, as being the most promising port for an adventurous whaleman to embark from. He at once resolved to accompany me to that island, ship aboard the same vessel, get into the same watch, the same boat, the same mess with me, in short to share my every hap; with both my hands in his, boldly dip into the Potluck of both worlds. To all this I joyously assented; for besides the affection I now felt for Queequeg, he was an experienced harpooneer, and as such, could not fail to be of great usefulness to one, who, like me, was wholly ignorant of the mysteries of whaling, though well acquainted with the sea, as known to merchant seamen.
His story being ended with his pipe's last dying puff, Queequeg embraced me, pressed his forehead against mine, and blowing out the light, we rolled over from each other, this way and that, and very soon were sleeping. *x* *x moby_013.html/Chapter xiii - WHEELBARROW*
Next morning, Monday, after disposing of the embalmed head to a barber, for a block, I settled my own and comrade's bill; using, however, my comrade's money. The grinning landlord, as well as the boarders, seemed amazingly tickled at the sudden friendship which had sprung up between me and Queequeg - especially as Peter Coffin's cock and bull stories about him had previously so much alarmed me concerning the very person whom I now companied with.
We borrowed a wheelbarrow, and embarking our things, including my own poor carpet-bag, and Queequeg's canvas sack and hammock, away we went down to "the Moss," the little Nantucket packet schooner moored at the wharf. As we were going along the people stared; not at Queequeg so much - for they were used to seeing cannibals like him in their streets, - but at seeing him and me upon such confidential terms. But we heeded them not, going along wheeling the barrow by turns, and Queequeg now and then stopping to adjust the sheath on his harpoon barbs. I asked him why he carried such a troublesome thing with him ashore, and whether all whaling ships did not find their own harpoons. To this, in substance, he replied, that though what I hinted was true enough, yet he had a particular affection for his own harpoon, because it was of assured stuff, well tried in many a mortal combat, and deeply intimate with the hearts of whales. In short, like many inland reapers and mowers, who go into the farmers' meadows armed with their own scythes - though in no wise obliged to furnished them - even so, Queequeg, for his own private reasons, preferred his own harpoon.
Shifting the barrow from my hand to his, he told me a funny story about the first wheelbarrow he had ever seen. It was in Sag Harbor. The owners of his ship, it seems, had lent him one,
in which to carry his heavy chest to his boarding house. Not to seem ignorant about the thing - though in truth he was entirely so, concerning the precise way in which to manage the barrow - Queequeg puts his chest upon it; lashes it fast; and then shoulders the barrow and marches up the wharf. "Why," said I, "Queequeg, you might have known better than that, one would think. Didn't the people laugh?"
Upon this, he told me another story. The people of his island of Rokovoko, it seems, at their wedding feasts express the fragrant water of young cocoanuts into a large stained calabash like a punchbowl; and this punchbowl always forms the great central ornament on the braided mat where the feast is held. Now a certain grand merchant ship once touched at Rokovoko, and its commander - from all accounts, a very stately punctilious gentleman, at least for a sea captain - this commander was invited to the wedding feast of Queequeg's sister, a pretty young princess just turned of ten. Well; when all the wedding guests were assembled at the bride's bamboo cottage, this Captain marches in, and being assigned the post of honor, placed himself over against the punchbowl, and between the High Priest and his majesty the King, Queequeg's father. Grace being said, - for those people have their grace as well as we - though Queequeg told me that unlike us, who at such times look downwards to our platters, they, on the contrary, copying the ducks, glance upwards to the great Giver of all feasts - Grace, I say, being said, the High Priest opens the banquet by the immemorial ceremony of the island; that is, dipping his consecrated and consecrating fingers into the bowl before the blessed beverage circulates. Seeing himself placed next the Priest, and noting the ceremony, and thinking himself - being Captain of a ship - as having plain precedence over a mere island King, especially in the King's own house - the Captain coolly proceeds to wash his hands in the punch bowl; - taking it i suppose for a huge finger-glass. "Now," said Queequeg, "what you tink now, - Didn't our people laugh?"
At last, passage paid, and luggage safe, we stood on board the schooner. Hoisting sail, it glided down the Acushnet river. On
one side, New Bedford rose in terraces of streets, their ice- covered trees all glittering in the clear, cold air. Huge hills and mountains of casks on casks were piled upon her wharves, and side by side the world-wandering whale ships lay silent and safely moored at last; while from others came a sound of carpenters and coopers, with blended noises of fires and forges to melt the pitch, all betokening that new cruises were on the start; that one most perilous and long voyage ended, only begins a second; and a second ended, only begins a third, and so on, for ever and for aye. Such is the endlessness, yea, the intolerableness of all earthly effort.
Gaining the more open water, the bracing breeze waxed fresh; the little Moss tossed the quick foam from her bows, as a young colt his snortings. How I snuffed that Tartar air! - how I spurned that turnpike earth! - that common highway all over dented with the marks of slavish heels and hoofs; and turned me to admire the magnanimity of the sea which will permit no records.
At the same foam-fountain, Queequeg seemed to drink and reel with me. His dusky nostrils swelled apart; he showed his filed and pointed teeth. On, on we flew, and our offing gained, the Moss did homage to the blast; ducked and dived her brows as a slave before the Sultan. Sideways leaning, we sideways darted; every ropeyarn tingling like a wire; the two tall masts buckling like Indian canes in land tornadoes. So full of this reeling scene were we, as we stood by the plunging bowsprit, that for some time we did not notice the jeering glances of the passengers, a lubber-like assembly, who marvelled that two fellow beings should be so companionable; as though a white man were anything more dignified than a whitewashed negro. But there were some boobies and bumpkins there, who, by their intense greenness, must have come from the heart and centre of all verdure. Queequeg caught one of these young saplings mimicking him behind his back. I thought the bumpkin's hour of doom was come. Dropping his harpoon, the brawny savage caught him in his arms, and by an almost miraculous dexterity and strength, sent him high up bodily into the air; then slightly
tapping his stern in mid-somerset, the fellow landed with bursting lungs upon his feet, while Queequeg, turning his back upon him, lighted his tomahawk pipe and passed it to me for a puff.
"Capting! Capting!" yelled the bumpkin, running towards that officer; "Capting, Capting, here's the devil."
"Hallo, you sir," cried the Captain, a gaunt rib of the sea, stalking up to Queequeg, "what in thunder do you mean by that? Don't you know you might have killed that chap?"
"What him say?" said Queequeg, as he mildly turned to me.
"He say," said I, "that you came near kill-e that man there," pointing to the still shivering greenhorn.
"Kill-e," cried Queequeg, twisting his tattooed face into an unearthly expression of disdain, "ah! him bevy small-e fish-e; Queequeg no kill-e so small-e fish-e; Queequeg kill-e big whale!"
"Look you," roared the Captain, "I'll kill-e you, you cannibal, if you try any more of your tricks aboard here; so mind your eye."
But it so happened just then, that it was high time for the Captain to mind his own eye. The prodigious strain upon the main-sail had parted the weather-sheet, and the tremendous boom was now flying from side to side, completely sweeping the entire after part of the deck. The poor fellow whom Queequeg had handled so roughly, was swept overboard; all hands were in a panic; and to attempt snatching at the boom to stay it, seemed madness. It flew from right to left, and back again, almost in one ticking of a watch, and every instant seemed on the point of snapping into splinters. Nothing was done, and nothing seemed capable of being done; those on deck rushed towards the bows, and stood eyeing the boom as if it were the lower jaw of an exasperated whale. In the midst of this consternation, Queequeg dropped deftly to his knees, and crawling under the path of the boom, whipped hold of a rope, secured one end to the bulwarks, and then flinging the other like a lasso, caught it round the boom as it swept over his head, and at the next jerk, the spar was that way trapped, and all was safe. The schooner was run into the wind, and while the hands were clearing away the stern boat, Queequeg, stripped to the waist, darted from the side with a long living arc of a leap. For three
minutes or more he was seen swimming like a dog, throwing his long arms straight out before him, and by turns revealing his brawny shoulders through the freezing foam. I looked at the grand and glorious fellow, but saw no one to be saved. The greenhorn had gone down. Shooting himself perpendicularly from the water, Queequeg now took an instant's glance around him, and seeming to see just how matters were, dived down and disappeared. A few minutes more, and he rose again, one arm still striking out, and with the other dragging a lifeless form. The boat soon picked them up. The poor bumpkin was restored. All hands voted Queequeg a noble trump; the captain begged his pardon. From that hour I clove to Queequeg like a barnacle; yea, till poor Queequeg took his last long dive.
Was there ever such unconsciousness? He did not seem to think that he at all deserved a medal from the Humane and Magnanimous Societies. He only asked for water - fresh water - something to wipe the brine off; that done, he put on dry clothes, lighted his pipe, and leaning against the bulwarks, and mildly eyeing those around him, seemed to be saying to himself - "It's a mutual, joint-stock world, in all meridians. We cannibals must help these Christians." *x* *x moby_014.html/Chapter xiv - NANTUCKET*
Nothing more happened on the passage worthy the mentioning; so, after a fine run, we safely arrived in Nantucket.
Nantucket! Take out your map and look at it. See what a real corner of the world it occupies; how it stands there, away off shore, more lonely than the Eddystone lighthouse. Look at it - a mere hillock, and elbow of sand; all beach, without a background. There is more sand there than you would use in twenty years as a substitute for blotting paper. Some gamesome wights will tell you that they have to plant weeds there, they don't
grow naturally; that they import Canada thistles; that they have to send beyond seas for a spile to stop a leak in an oil cask; that pieces of wood in Nantucket are carried about like bits of the true cross in Rome; that people there plant toadstools before their houses, to get under the shade in summer time; that one blade of grass makes an oasis, three blades in a day's walk a prairie; that they wear quicksand shoes, something like Laplander snowshoes; that they are so shut up, belted about, every way inclosed, surrounded, and made an utter island of by the ocean, that to their very chairs and tables small clams will sometimes be found adhering, as to the backs of sea turtles. But these extravaganzas only show that Nantucket is no Illinois.
Look now at the wondrous traditional story of how this island was settled by the red-men. Thus goes the legend. In olden times an eagle swooped down upon the New England coast, and carried off an infant Indian in his talons. With loud lament the parents saw their child borne out of sight over the wide waters. They resolved to follow in the same direction. Setting out in their canoes, after a perilous passage they discovered the island, and there they found an empty ivory casket, - the poor little Indian's skeleton.
What wonder, then, that these Nantucketers, born on a beach, should take to the sea for a livelihood! They first caught crabs and quohogs in the sand; grown bolder, they waded out with nets for mackerel; more experienced, they pushed off in boats and captured cod; and at last, launching a navy of great ships on the sea, explored this watery world; put an incessant belt of circumnavigations round it; peeped in at Behring's Straits; and in all seasons and all oceans declared everlasting war with the mightiest animated mass that has survived the flood; most monstrous and most mountainous! That Himmalehan, salt-sea Mastodon, clothed with such portentousness of unconscious power, that his very panics are more to be dreaded than his most fearless and malicious assaults!
And thus have these naked Nantucketers, these sea hermits, issuing from their ant-hill in the sea, overrun and conquered the watery world like so many Alexanders; parcelling out among
them the Atlantic, Pacific, and Indian oceans, as the three pirate powers did Poland. Let America add Mexico to Texas, and pile Cuba upon Canada; let the English overswarm all India, and hang out their blazing banner from the sun; two thirds of this terraqueous globe are the Nantucketer's. For the sea is his; he owns it, as Emperors own empires; other seamen having but a right of way through it. Merchant ships are but extension bridges; armed ones but floating forts; even pirates and privateers, though following the sea as highwaymen the road, they but plunder other ships, other fragments of the land like themselves, without seeking to draw their living from the bottomless deep itself. The Nantucketer, he alone resides and riots on the sea; he alone, in Bible language, goes down to it in ships; to and fro ploughing it as his own special plantation. There is his home; there lies his business, which a noah's flood would not interrupt, though it overwhelmed all the millions in China. He lives on the sea, as prairie cocks in the prairie; he hides among the waves, he climbs them as chamois hunters climb the Alps. For years he knows not the land; so that when he comes to it at last, it smells like another world, more strangely than the moon would to an Earthsman. With the landless gull, that at sunset folds her wings and is rocked to sleep between billows; so at nightfall, the Nantucketer, out of sight of land, furls his sails, and lays him to his rest, while under his very pillow rush herds of walruses and whales. *x* *x moby_015.html/Chapter xv - CHOWDER*
It was quite late in the evening when the little Moss came snugly to anchor, and Queequeg and I went ashore; so we could attend to no business that day, at least none but a supper and a bed. The landlord of the Spouter-Inn had recommended us to his cousin Hosea Hussey of the Try Pots, whom he asserted to
be the proprietor of one of the best kept hotels in all Nantucket, and moreover he had assured us that cousin Hosea, as he called him, was famous for his chowders. In short, he plainly hinted that we could not possibly do better than try pot-luck at the Try Pots. But the directions he had given us about keeping a yellow warehouse on our starboard hand till we opened a white church to the larboard, and then keeping that on the larboard hand till we made a corner three points to the starboard, and that done, then ask the first man we met where the place was: these crooked directions of his very much puzzled us at first, especially as, at the outset, Queequeg insisted that the yellow warehouse - our first point of departure - must be left on the larboard hand, whereas I had understood Peter Coffin to say it was on the starboard. However, by dint of beating about a little in the dark, and now and then knocking up a peaceable inhabitant to inquire the way, we at last came to something which there was no mistaking.
Two enormous wooden pots painted black, and suspended by asses' ears, swung from the cross-trees of an old top-mast, planted in front of an old doorway. The horns of the cross-trees were sawed off on the other side, so that this old top-mast looked not a little like a gallows. Perhaps I was over sensitive to such impressions at the time, but I could not help staring at this gallows with a vague misgiving. A sort of crick was in my neck as I gazed up to the two remaining horns; yes, two of them, one for Queequeg, and one for me. It's ominous, thinks I. A Coffin my Innkeeper upon landing in my first whaling port; tombstones staring at me in the whalemen's chapel; and here a gallows! and a pair of prodigious black pots too! Are these last throwing out oblique hints touching Tophet?
I was called from these reflections by the sight of a freckled woman with yellow hair and a yellow gown, standing in the porch of the inn, under a dull red lamp swinging there, that looked much like an injured eye, and carrying on a brisk scolding with a man in a purple woollen shirt.
"Get along with ye," said she to the man, "or I'll be combing ye!"
"Come on, Queequeg," said I, "all right. There's Mrs. Hussey."
And so it turned out; Mr. Hosea Hussey being from home, but leaving Mrs. Hussey entirely competent to attend to all his affairs. Upon making known our desires for a supper and a bed, Mrs. Hussey, postponing further scolding for the present, ushered us into a little room, and seating us at a table spread with the relics of a recently concluded repast, turned round to us and said - "Clam or Cod?"
"What's that about Cods, ma'am?" said I, with much politeness.
"Clam or Cod?" she repeated.
"A clam for supper? a cold clam; is that what you mean, Mrs. Hussey?" says I; "but that's a rather cold and clammy reception in the winter time, ain't it, Mrs Hussey?"
But being in a great hurry to resume scolding the man in the purple shirt, who was waiting for it in the entry, and seeming to hear nothing but the word "clam," Mrs. Hussey hurried towards an open door leading to the kitchen, and bawling out "clam for two," disappeared.
"Queequeg," said I, "do you think that we can make out a supper for us both on one clam?"
However, a warm savory steam from the kitchen served to belie the apparently cheerless prospect before us. But when that smoking chowder came in, the mystery was delightfully explained. Oh, sweet friends! hearken to me. It was made of small juicy clams, scarcely bigger than hazel nuts, mixed with pounded ship biscuit, and salted pork cut up into little flakes; the whole enriched with butter, and plentifully seasoned with pepper and salt. Our appetites being sharpened by the frosty voyage, and in particular, Queequeg seeing his favorite fishing food before him, and the chowder being surpassingly excellent, we despatched it with great expedition: when leaning back a moment and bethinking me of Mrs. Hussey's clam and cod announcement, I thought I would try a little experiment. Stepping to the kitchen door, I uttered the word "cod" with great emphasis, and resumed my seat. In a few moments the savory steam came forth again, but with a different flavor, and in good time a fine cod- chowder was placed before us.
We resumed business; and while plying our spoons in the
bowl, thinks I to myself, I wonder now if this here has any effect on the head? What's that stultifying saying about chowder-headed people? "But look, Queequeg, ain't that a live eel in your bowl? Where's your harpoon?"
Fishiest of all fishy places was the Try Pots, which well deserved its name; for the pots there were always boiling chowders. Chowder for breakfast, and chowder for dinner, and chowder for supper, till you began to look for fish-bones coming through your clothes. The area before the house was paved with clam-shells. Mrs. Hussey wore a polished necklace of codfish vertebra; and Hosea Hussey had his account books bound in superior old shark-skin. There was a fishy flavor to the milk, too, which I could not at all account for, till one morning happening to take a stroll along the beach among some fishermen's boats, I saw Hosea's brindled cow feeding on fish remnants, and marching along the sand with each foot in a cod's decapitated head, looking very slip-shod, I assure ye.
Supper concluded, we received a lamp, and directions from Mrs. Hussey concerning the nearest way to bed; but, as Queequeg was about to precede me up the stairs, the lady reached forth her arm, and demanded his harpoon; she allowed no harpoon in her chambers. "Why not?" said I; "every true whaleman sleeps with his harpoon - but why not?" "Because it's dangerous," says she. "Ever since young Stiggs coming from that unfort'nt v'y'ge of his, when he was gone four years and a half, with only three barrels of ile, was found dead in my first floor back, with his harpoon in his side; ever since then I allow no boarders to take sich dangerous weepons in their rooms at night. So, Mr. Queequeg"(for she had learned his name), "I will just take this here iron, and keep it for you till morning. But the chowder; clam or cod to-morrow for breakfast, men?"
"Both," says I; "and let's have a couple of smoked herring by way of variety." *x* *x moby_016.html/Chapter xvi - THE SHIP*
In bed we concocted our plans for the morrow. But to my surprise and no small concern, Queequeg now gave me to understand, that he had been diligently consulting Yojo - the name of his black little god - and Yojo had told him two or three times over, and strongly insisted upon it everyway, that instead of our going together among the whaling-fleet in harbor, and in concert selecting our craft; instead of this, I say, Yojo earnestly enjoined that the selection of the ship should rest wholly with me, inasmuch as Yojo purposed befriending us; and, in order to do so, had already pitched upon a vessel, which, if left to myself, I, Ishmael, should infallibly light upon, for all the world as though it had turned out by chance; and in that vessel I must immediately ship myself, for the present irrespective of Queequeg.
I have forgotten to mention that, in many things, Queequeg placed great confidence in the excellence of Yojo's judgment and surprising forecast of things; and cherished Yojo with considerable esteem, as a rather good sort of god, who perhaps meant well enough upon the whole, but in all cases did not succeed in his benevolent designs.
Now, this plan of Queequeg's, or rather Yojo's, touching the selection of our craft; I did not like that plan at all. I had not a little relied on Queequeg's sagacity to point out the whaler best fitted to carry us and our fortunes securely. But as all my remonstrances produced no effect upon Queequeg, I was obliged to acquiesce; and accordingly prepared to set about this business with a determined rushing sort of energy and vigor, that should quickly settle that trifling little affair. Next morning early, leaving Queequeg shut up with Yojo in our little bedroom - for it seemed that it was some sort of Lent or Ramadan, or day of fasting, humiliation, and prayer with Queequeg and Yojo that
day; how it was I never could find out, for, though I applied myself to it several times, I never could master his liturgies and XXXIX Articles - leaving Queequeg, then, fasting on his tomahawk pipe, and Yojo warming himself at his sacrificial fire of shavings, I sallied out among the shipping. After much prolonged sauntering and many random inquiries, I learnt that there were three ships up for three-years' voyages - The Devil-Dam the Tit- bit, and the Pequod. Devil- dam, I do not know the origin of; Tit-bit is obvious; Pequod, you will no doubt remember, was the name of a celebrated tribe of Massachusetts Indians, now extinct as the ancient Medes. I peered and pryed about the Devil-Dam; from her, hopped over to the Tit-bit; and, finally, going on board the Pequod, looked around her for a moment, and then decided that this was the very ship for us.
You may have seen many a quaint craft in your day, for aught I know; - squared-toed luggers; mountainous Japanese junks; butter-box galliots, and what not; but take my word for it, you never saw such a rare old craft as this same rare old Pequod. She was a ship of the old school, rather small if anything; with an old fashioned claw-footed look about her. Long seasoned and weather-stained in the typhoons and calms of all four oceans, her old hull's complexion was darkened like a French grenadier's, who has alike fought in Egypt and Siberia. Her venerable bows looked bearded. Her masts - cut somewhere on the coast of Japan, where her original ones were lost overboard in a gale - her masts stood stiffly up like the spines of the three old kings of Cologne. Her ancient decks were worn and wrinkled, like the pilgrim-worshipped flag-stone in Canterbury Cathedral where Beckett bled. But to all these her old antiquities, were added new and marvellous features, pertaining to the wild business that for more than half a century she had followed. Old Captain Peleg, many years her chief-mate, before he commanded another vessel of his own, and now a retired seaman, and one of the principal owners of the Pequod, - this old Peleg, during the term of his chief-mateship, had built upon her original grotesqueness, and inlaid it, all over, with a quaintness both of material and device, unmatched by anything except it be Thorkill-Hake's carved buckler or bedstead. She was
apparelled like any barbaric Ethiopian emperor, his neck heavy with pendants of polished ivory. She was a thing of trophies. A cannibal of a craft, tricking herself forth in the chased bones of her enemies. All round, her unpanelled, open bulwarks were garnished like one continuous jaw, with the long sharp teeth of the Sperm Whale, inserted there for pins, to fasten her old hempen thews and tendons to. Those thews ran not through base blocks of land wood, but deftly travelled over sheaves of sea-ivory. Scorning a turnstile wheel at her reverend helm, she sported there a tiller; and that tiller was in one mass, curiously carved from the long narrow lower jaw of her hereditary foe. The helmsman who steered by that tiller in a tempest, felt like the Tartar, when he holds back his fiery steed by clutching its jaw. A noble craft, but somehow a most melancholy! All noble things are touched with that.
Now when I looked about the quarter-deck, for some one having authority, in order to propose myself as a candidate for the voyage, at first I saw nobody; but I could not well overlook a strange sort of tent, or rather wigwam, pitched a little behind the main-mast. It seemed only a temporary erection used in port. It was of a conical shape, some ten feet high; consisting of the long, huge slabs of limber black bone taken from the middle and highest part of the jaws of the right-whale. Planted with their broad ends on the deck, a circle of these slabs laced together, mutually sloped towards each other, and at the apex united in a tufted point, where the loose hairy fibres waved to and fro like a top-knot on some old Pottowotamie Sachem's head. A triangular opening faced towards the bows of the ship, so that the insider commanded a complete view forward.
And half concealed in this queer tenement, I at length found one who by his aspect seemed to have authority; and who, it being noon, and the ship's work suspended, was now enjoying respite from the burden of command. He was seated on an old-fashioned oaken chair, wriggling all over with curious carving; and the bottom of which was formed of a stout interlacing of the same elastic stuff of which the wigwam was constructed.
There was nothing so very particular, perhaps, about the
appearance of the elderly man I saw; he was brown and brawny, like most old seamen, and heavily rolled up in blue pilot-cloth, cut in the Quaker style; only there was a fine and almost microscopic net-work of the minutest wrinkles interlacing round his eyes, which must have arisen from his continual sailings in many hard gales, and always looking to windward; - for this causes the muscles about the eyes to become pursed together. Such eye- wrinkles are very effectual in a scowl.
"Is this the Captain of the Pequod?" said I, advancing to the door of the tent.
"Supposing it be the Captain of the Pequod, what dost thou want of him?" he demanded.
"I was thinking of shipping."
"Thou wast, wast thou? I see thou are no Nantucketer - ever been in a stove boat?"
"No, Sir, I never have."
"Dost know nothing at all about whaling, I dare say - eh?"
"Nothing, Sir; but I have no doubt I shall soon learn. I've been several voyages in the merchant service, and I think that - "
"Marchant service be damned. Talk not that lingo to me. Dost see that leg? - I'll take that leg away from thy stern, if ever thou talkest of the marchant service to me again. Marchant service indeed! I suppose now ye feel considerable proud of having served in those marchant ships. But flukes! man, what makes thee want to go a whaling, eh? - it looks a little suspicious, don't it, eh? - Hast not been a pirate, hast thou? - Didst not rob thy last Captain, didst thou? - Dost not think of murdering the officers when thou gettest to sea?"
I protested my innocence of these things. I saw that under the mask of these half humorous inuendoes, this old seaman, as an insulated Quakerish Nantucketer, was full of his insular prejudices, and rather distrustful of all aliens, unless they hailed from Cape Cod or the Vineyard.
"But what takes thee a-whaling? I want to know that before I think of shipping ye."
"Well, sir, I want to see what whaling is. I want to see the world."
"Want to see what whaling is, eh? Have ye clapped eye on Captain Ahab?"
"Who is Captain Ahab, sir?"
"Aye, aye, I thought so. Captain Ahab is the Captain of this ship."
"I am mistaken then. I thought I was speaking to the Captain himself."
"Thou art speaking to Captain Peleg - that's who ye are speaking to, young man. It belongs to me and Captain Bildad to see the Pequod fitted out for the voyage, and supplied with all her needs, including crew. We are part owners and agents. But as I was going to say, if thou wantest to know what whaling is, as thou tellest ye do, I can put ye in a way of finding it out before ye bind yourself to it, past backing out. Clap eye on Captain Ahab, young man, and thou wilt find that he has only one leg."
"What do you mean, sir? Was the other one lost by a whale?"
"Lost by a whale! Young man, come nearer to me: it was devoured, chewed up, crunched by the monstrousest parmacetty that ever chipped a boat! - ah, ah!"
I was a little alarmed by his energy, perhaps also a little touched at the hearty grief in his concluding exclamation, but said as calmly as I could, "What you say is no doubt true enough, sir; but how could I know there was any peculiar ferocity in that particular whale, though indeed I might have inferred as much from the simple fact of the accident."
"Look ye now, young man, thy lungs are a sort of soft, d'ye see; thou dost not talk shark a bit. Sure, ye've been to sea before now; sure of that?"
"Sir," said I, "I thought I told you that I had been four voyages in the merchant - "
"Hard down out of that! Mind what I said about the marchant service - don't aggravate me - I won't have it. But let us understand each other. I have given thee a hint about what whaling is; do ye yet feel inclined for it?"
"I do, sir."
"Very good. Now, art thou the man to pitch a harpoon down a live whale's throat, and then jump after it? Answer, quick!"
"I am, sir, if it should be positively indispensable to do so; not to be got rid of, that is; which I don't take to be the fact."
"Good again. Now then, thou not only wantest to go a-whaling, to find out by experience what whaling is, but ye also want to
go in order to see the world? Was not that what ye said? I thought so. Well then, just step forward there, and take a peep over the weather-bow, and then back to me and tell me what ye see there."
For a moment I stood a little puzzled by this curious request, not knowing exactly how to take it, whether humorously or in earnest. But concentrating all his crow's feet into one scowl, Captain Peleg started me on the errand.
Going forward and glancing over the weather bow, I perceived that the ship swinging to her anchor with the flood-tide, was now obliquely pointing towards the open ocean. The prospect was unlimited, but exceedingly monotonous and forbidding; not the slightest variety that I could see.
"Well, what's the report?" said Peleg when I came back; "what did ye see?"
"Not much," I replied - "nothing but water; considerable horizon though, and there's a squall coming up, I think."
"Well, what dost thou think then of seeing the world? Do ye wish to go round Cape Horn to see any more of it, eh? Can't ye see the world where you stand?"
I was a little staggered, but go a-whaling I must, and I would; and the Pequod was as good a ship as any - I thought the best - and all this I now repeated to Peleg. Seeing me so determined, he expressed his willingness to ship me.
"And thou mayest as well sign the papers right off," he added - " come along with ye." And so saying, he led the way below deck into the cabin.
Seated on the transom was what seemed to me a most uncommon and surprising figure. It turned out to be Captain Bildad, who along with Captain Peleg was one of the largest owners of the vessel; the other shares, as is sometimes the case in these ports, being held by a crowd of old annuitants; widows, fatherless children, and chancery wards; each owning about the value of a timber head, or a foot of plank, or a nail or two in the ship. People in Nantucket invest their money in whaling vessels, the same way that you do yours in approved state stocks bringing in good interest.
Now, Bildad, like Peleg, and indeed many other Nantucketers,
was a Quaker, the island having been originally settled by that sect; and to this day its inhabitants in general retain in an uncommon measure the peculiarities of the Quaker, only variously and anomalously modified by things altogether alien and heterogeneous. For some of these same Quakers are the most sanguinary of all sailors and whale-hunters. They are fighting Quakers; they are Quakers with a vengeance.
So that there are instances among them of men, who, named with Scripture names - a singularly common fashion on the island - and in childhood naturally imbibing the stately dramatic thee and thou of the Quaker idiom; still, from the audacious, daring, and boundless adventure of their subsequent lives, strangely blend with these unoutgrown peculiarities, a thousand bold dashes of character, not unworthy a Scandinavian sea-king, or a poetical Pagan Roman. And when these things unite in a man of greatly superior natural force, with a globular brain and a ponderous heart; who has also by the stillness and seclusion of many long night-watches in the remotest waters, and beneath constellations never seen here at the north, been led to think untraditionally and independently; receiving all nature's sweet or savage impressions fresh from her own virgin voluntary and confiding breast, and thereby chiefly, but with some help from accidental advantages, to learn a bold and nervous lofty language - that man makes one in a whole nation's census - a mighty pageant creature, formed for noble tragedies. Nor will it at all detract from him, dramatically regarded, if either by birth or other circumstances, he have what seems a half wilful overruling morbidness at the bottom of his nature. For all men tragically great are made so through a certain morbidness. Be sure of this, O young ambition, all mortal greatness is but disease. But, as yet we have not to do with such an one, but with quite another; and still a man, who, if indeed peculiar, it only results again from another phase of the Quaker, modified by individual circumstances.
Like Captain Peleg, Captain Bildad was a well-to-do, retired whaleman. But unlike Captain Peleg - who cared not a rush for what are called serious things, and indeed deemed those selfsame serious things the veriest of all trifles - Captain Bildad
had not only been originally educated according to the strictest sect of Nantucket Quakerism, but all his subsequent ocean life, and the sight of many unclad, lovely island creatures, round the Horn - all that had not moved this native born Quaker one single jot, had not so much as altered one angle of his vest. Still, for all this immutableness, was there some lack of common consistency about worthy Captain Bildad. Though refusing, from conscientious scruples, to bear arms against land invaders, yet himself had illimitably invaded the Atlantic and Pacific; and though a sworn foe to human bloodshed, yet had he in his straight-bodied coat, spilled tuns upon tuns of leviathan gore. How now in the contemplative evening of his days, the pious Bildad reconciled these things in the reminiscence, I do not know; but it did not seem to concern him much, and very probably he had long since come to the sage and sensible conclusion that a man's religion is one thing, and this practical world quite another. This world pays dividends. Rising from a little cabin-boy in short clothes of the drabbest drab, to a harpooneer in a broad shad-bellied waistcoat; from that becoming boat-header, chief-mate, and captain, and finally a ship-owner; Bildad, as I hinted before, had concluded his adventurous career by wholly retiring from active life at the goodly age of sixty, and dedicating his remaining days to the quiet receiving of his well-earned income.
Now Bildad, I am sorry to say, had the reputation of being an incorrigible old hunks, and in his sea-going days, a bitter, hard task-master. They told me in Nantucket, though it certainly seems a curious story, that when he sailed the old Categut whaleman, his crew, upon arriving home, were mostly all carried ashore to the hospital, sore exhausted and worn out. For a pious man, especially for a Quaker, he was certainly rather hard-hearted to say the least. He never used to swear, though, at his men, they said; but somehow he got an inordinate quantity of cruel, unmitigated hard work out of them. When Bildad was a chief-mate, to have his drab-colored eye intently looking at you, made you feel completely nervous, till you could clutch something - a hammer or a marling-spike, and go to work like mad, at something or other, never mind what. Indolence and
idleness perished from before him. His own person was the exact embodiment of his utilitarian character. On his long, gaunt body, he carried no spare flesh, no superfluous beard, his chin having a soft, economical nap to it, like the worn nap of his broad- brimmed hat.
Such, then, was the person that I saw seated on the transom when I followed Captain Peleg down into the cabin. The space between the decks was small; and there, bolt- upright, sat old Bildad, who always sat so, and never leaned, and this to save his coat tails. His broad-brim was placed beside him; his legs were stiffly crossed; his drab vesture was buttoned up to his chin; and spectacles on nose, he seemed absorbed in reading from a ponderous volume.
"Bildad," cried Captain Peleg," at it again, Bildad, eh? Ye have been studying those Scriptures, now, for the last thirty years, to my certain knowledge. How far ye got, Bildad?"
As if long habituated to such profane talk from his old shipmate, Bildad, without noticing his present irreverence, quietly looked up, and seeing me, glanced again inquiringly towards Peleg.
"He says he's our man, Bildad," said Peleg," he wants to ship."
"Dost thee?" said Bildad, in a hollow tone, and turning round to me.
"I dost," said I unconsciously, he was so intense a Quaker.
"What do ye think of him, Bildad?" said Peleg.
"He'll do," said Bildad, eyeing me, and then went on spelling away at his book in a mumbling tone quite audible.
I thought him the queerest old Quaker I ever saw, especially as Peleg, his friend and old shipmate, seemed such a blusterer. But I said nothing, only looking round me sharply. Peleg now threw open a chest, and drawing forth the ship's articles, placed pen and ink before him, and seated himself at a little table. I began to think it was high time to settle with myself at what terms I would be willing to engage for the voyage. I was already aware that in the whaling business they paid no wages; but all hands, including the captain, received certain shares of the profits called lays, and that these lays were proportioned to the degree of importance pertaining to the respective duties of the ship's company.
I was also aware that being a green hand at whaling, my own lay would not be very large; but considering that I was used to the sea, could steer a ship, splice a rope, and all that, I made no doubt that from all I had heard I should be offered at least the 275th lay - that is, the 275th part of the clear nett proceeds of the voyage, whatever that might eventually amount to. And though the 275th lay was what they call a rather long lay, yet it was better than nothing; and if we had a lucky voyage, might pretty nearly pay for the clothing I would wear out on it, not to speak of my three years' beef and board, for which I would not have to pay one stiver.
It might be thought that this was a poor way to accumulate a princely fortune - and so it was, a very poor way indeed. But I am one of those that never take on about princely fortunes, and am quite content if the world is ready to board and lodge me, while I am putting up at this grim sign of the Thunder Cloud. Upon the whole, I thought that the 275th lay would be about the fair thing, but would not have been surprised had I been offered the 200th, considering I was of a broad-shouldered make.
But one thing, nevertheless, that made me a little distrustful about receiving a generous share of the profits was this: Ashore, I had heard something of both Captain Peleg and his unaccountable old crony Bildad; how that they being the principal proprietors of the Pequod, therefore the other and more inconsiderable and scattered owners, left nearly the whole management of the ship's affairs to these two. And I did not know but what the stingy old Bildad might have a mighty deal to say about shipping hands, especially as I now found him on board the Pequod, quite at home there in the cabin, and reading his Bible as if at his own fireside. Now while Peleg was vainly trying to mend a pen with his jack-knife, old Bildad, to my no small surprise, considering that he was such an interested party in these proceedings; Bildad never heeded us, but went on mumbling to himself out of his book," Lay not up for yourselves treasures upon earth, where moth - "
"Well, Captain Bildad," interrupted Peleg," what d'ye say, what lay shall we give this young man?"
"Thou knowest best," was the sepulchral reply, "the seven hundred and seventy-seventh wouldn't be too much, would it? - "where moth and rust do corrupt, but lay - ""
Lay, indeed, thought I, and such a lay! the seven hundred and seventy-seventh! Well, old Bildad, you are determined that I, for one, shall not lay up many lays here below, where moth and rust do corrupt. It was an exceedingly long lay that, indeed; and though from the magnitude of the figure it might at first deceive a landsman, yet the slightest consideration will show that though seven hundred and seventy-seven is a pretty large number, yet, when you come to make a teenth of it, you will then see, I say, that the seven hundred and seventy-seventh part of a farthing is a good deal less than seven hundred and seventy-seven gold doubloons; and so I thought at the time.
"Why, blast your eyes, Bildad," cried Peleg, "Thou dost not want to swindle this young man! he must have more than that."
"Seven hundred and seventy-seventh," again said Bildad, without lifting his eyes; and then went on mumbling - "for where your treasure is, there will your heart be also."
"I am going to put him down for the three hundredth," said Peleg, "do ye hear that, Bildad! The three hundredth lay, I say."
Bildad laid down his book, and turning solemnly towards him said, "Captain Peleg, thou hast a generous heart; but thou must consider the duty thou owest to the other owners of this ship - widows and orphans, many of them - and that if we too abundantly reward the labors of this young man, we may be taking the bread from those widows and those orphans. The seven hundred and seventy-seventh lay, Captain Peleg."
"Thou Bildad!" roared Peleg, starting up and clattering about the cabin. "Blast ye, Captain Bildad, if I had followed thy advice in these matters, I would afore now had a conscience to lug about that would be heavy enough to founder the largest ship that ever sailed round Cape Horn."
"Captain Peleg," said Bildad steadily, "thy conscience may be drawing ten inches of water, or ten fathoms, i can't tell; but as thou art still an impenitent man, captain Peleg, I greatly fear lest thy conscience be but a leaky one; and will in the end sink thee foundering down to the fiery pit, Captain Peleg."
"Fiery pit! fiery pit! ye insult me, man; past all natural bearing, ye insult me. It's an all-fired outrage to tell any human creature that he's bound to hell. Flukes and flames! Bildad, say that again to me, and start my soul-bolts, but I'll - I'll - yes, I'll swallow a live goat with all his hair and horns on. Out of the cabin, ye canting, drab-colored son of a wooden gun - a straight wake with ye!"
As he thundered out this he made a rush at Bildad, but with a marvellous oblique, sliding celerity, Bildad for that time eluded him.
Alarmed at this terrible outburst between the two principal and responsible owners of the ship, and feeling half a mind to give up all idea of sailing in a vessel so questionably owned and temporarily commanded, I stepped aside from the door to give egress to Bildad, who, I made no doubt, was all eagerness to vanish from before the awakened wrath of Peleg. But to my astonishment, he sat down again on the transom very quietly, and seemed to have not the slightest intention of withdrawing. He seemed quite used to impenitent Peleg and his ways. As for Peleg, after letting off his rage as he had, there seemed no more left in him, and he, too, sat down like a lamb, though he twitched a little as if still nervously agitated. "Whew!" he whistled at last - "the squall's gone off to leeward, I think. Bildad, thou used to be good at sharpening a lance, mend that pen, will ye. My jack-knife here needs the grindstone. That's he; thank ye, Bildad. Now then, my young man, Ishmael's thy name, didn't ye say? Well then, down ye go here, Ishmael, for the three hundredth lay."
"Captain Peleg," said I, "I have a friend with me who wants to ship too - shall I bring him down to-morrow?"
"To be sure," said Peleg. "Fetch him along, and we'll look at him."
"What lay does he want?" groaned Bildad, glancing up from the book in which he had again been burying himself.
"Oh! never thee mind about that, Bildad," said Peleg. "Has he ever whaled it any?" turning to me.
"Killed more whales than I can count," Captain Peleg.
"Well, bring him along then."
And, after signing the papers, off I went; nothing doubting but that I had done a good morning's work, and that the Pequod was the identical ship that Yojo had provided to carry Queequeg and me round the Cape.
But I had not proceeded far, when I began to bethink me that the captain with whom I was to sail yet remained unseen by me; though, indeed, in many cases, a whale-ship will be completely fitted out, and receive all her crew on board, ere the captain makes himself visible by arriving to take command; for sometimes these voyages are so prolonged, and the shore intervals at home so exceedingly brief, that if the captain have a family, or any absorbing concernment of that sort, he does not trouble himself much about his ship in port, but leaves her to the owners till all is ready for sea. However, it is always as well to have a look at him before irrevocably committing yourself into his hands. Turning back I accosted Captain Peleg, inquiring where Captain Ahab was to be found.
"And what dost thou want of Captain Ahab? It's all right enough; thou art shipped."
"Yes, but I should like to see him."
"But I don't think thou wilt be able to at present. I don't know exactly what's the matter with him; but he keeps close inside the house; a sort of sick, and yet he don't look so. In fact, he ain't sick; but no, he isn't well either. Any how, young man, he won't always see me, so I don't suppose he will thee. He's a queer man, Captain Ahab - so some think - but a good one. Oh, thou'lt like him well enough; no fear, no fear. he's a grand, ungodly, god-like man, Captain Ahab; doesn't speak much; but, when he does speak, then you may well listen. Mark ye, be forewarned; Ahab's above the common; Ahab's been in colleges, as well as 'mong the cannibals; been used to deeper wonders than the waves; fixed his fiery lance in mightier stranger foes than whales. His lance! aye, the keenest and the surest that out of all our isle! Oh! he ain't Captain Bildad; no, and he ain't Captain Peleg; he's Ahab, boy; and Ahab of old, thou knowest, was a crowned king!"
"And a very vile one. When that wicked king was slain, the dogs, did they not lick his blood?"
"Come hither to me - hither, hither," said Peleg, with a significance in his eye that almost startled me. "Look ye, lad; never say that on board the Pequod. Never say it anywhere. Captain Ahab did not name himself. 'Twas a foolish, ignorant whim of his crazy, widowed mother, who died when he was only a twelvemonth old. And yet the old squaw Tistig, at Gayhead, said that the name would somehow prove prophetic. And, perhaps, other fools like her may tell thee the same. I wish to warn thee. It's a lie. I know Captain Ahab well; I've sailed with him as mate years ago; I know what he is - a good man - not a pious, good man, like Bildad, but a swearing good man - something like me - only there's a good deal more of him. Aye, aye, I know that he was never very jolly; and I know that on the passage home, he was a little out of his mind for a spell; but it was the sharp shooting pains in his bleeding stump that brought that about, as any one might see. I know, too, that ever since he lost his leg last voyage by that accursed whale, he's been a kind of moody - desperate moody, and savage sometimes; but that will all pass off. And once for all, let me tell thee and assure thee, young man, it's better to sail with a moody good captain than a laughing bad one. So good-bye to thee - and wrong not Captain Ahab, because he happens to have a wicked name. Besides, my boy, he has a wife - not three voyages wedded - a sweet, resigned girl. Think of that; by that sweet girl that old man has a child: hold ye then there can be any utter, hopeless harm in Ahab? No, no, my lad; stricken, blasted, if he be, Ahab has his humanities!"
As I walked away, I was full of thoughtfulness; what had been incidentally revealed to me of Captain Ahab, filled me with a certain wild vagueness of painfulness concerning him. And somehow, at the time, I felt a sympathy and a sorrow for him, but for I don't know what, unless it was the cruel loss of his leg. And yet I also felt a strange awe of him; but that sort of awe, which I cannot at all describe, was not exactly awe; I do not know what it was. But I felt it; and it did not disincline me towards him; though I felt impatience at what seemed like mystery in him, so imperfectly as he was known to me then. However, my thoughts were at length carried in other directions, so that for the present dark Ahab slipped my mind. *x* *x moby_017.html/Chapter xvii - THE RAMADAN*
As Queequeg's Ramadan, or Fasting and Humiliation, was to continue all day, I did not choose to disturb him till towards night-fall; for I cherish the greatest respect towards everybody's religious obligations, never mind how comical, and could not find it in my heart to undervalue even a congregation of ants worshipping a toad-stool; or those other creatures in certain parts of our earth, who with a degree of footmanism quite unprecedented in other planets, bow down before the torso of a deceased landed proprietor merely on account of the inordinate possessions yet owned and rented in his name.
I say, we good Presbyterian Christians should be charitable in these things, and not fancy ourselves so vastly superior to other mortals, pagans and what not, because of their half-crazy conceits on these subjects. There was Queequeg, now, certainly entertaining the most absurd notions about Yojo and his Ramadan; - but what of that? Queequeg thought he knew what he was about, I suppose; he seemed to be content; and there let him rest. All our arguing with him would not avail; let him be, I say: and Heaven have mercy on us all - Presbyterians and Pagans alike - for we are all somehow dreadfully cracked about the head, and sadly need mending.
Towards evening, when I felt assured that all his performances and rituals must be over, I went up to his room and knocked at the door; but no answer. I tried to open it, but it was fastened inside. "Queequeg," said I softly through the key-hole: - all silent. "I say, Queequeg! why don't you speak? It's I - Ishmael." But all remained still as before. I began to grow alarmed. I had allowed him such abundant time; I thought he might have had an apoplectic fit. I looked through the key-hole; but the door opening into an odd corner of the room, the key-hole prospect was but a crooked and sinister one. I could only see part of the foot-board of the bed and a line of
the wall, but nothing more. I was surprised to behold resting against the wall the wooden shaft of Queequeg's harpoon, which the landlady the evening previous had taken from him, before our mounting to the chamber. That's strange, thought I; but at any rate, since the harpoon stands yonder, and he seldom or never goes abroad without it, therefore he must be inside here, and no possible mistake.
"Queequeg! - Queequeg!" - all still. Something must have happened. Apoplexy! I tried to burst open the door; but it stubbornly resisted. Running down stairs, I quickly stated my suspicions to the first person i met - the chambermaid. "La! La!" she cried, "I thought something must be the matter. I went to make the bed after breakfast, and the door was locked; and not a mouse to be heard; and it's been just so silent ever since. But I thought, may be, you had both gone off and locked your baggage in for safe keeping. La! La, ma'am! - Mistress! murder! Mrs. Hussey! apoplexy!" - and with these cries, she ran towards the kitchen, I following.
Mrs. Hussey soon appeared, with a mustard-pot in one hand and a vinegar-cruet in the other, having just broken away from the occupation of attending to the castors, and scolding her little black boy meantime.
"Wood- house!" cried I, "which way to it? Run for God's sake, and fetch something to pry open the door - the axe! - the axe! he's had a stroke; depend upon it!" - and so saying I was unmethodically rushing up stairs again empty-handed, when Mrs. Hussey interposed the mustard-pot and vinegar-cruet, and the entire castor of her countenance.
"What's the matter with you, young man?"
"Get the axe! For God's sake, run for the doctor, some one, while I pry it open!"
"Look here," said the landlady, quickly putting down the vinegar-cruet, so as to have one hand free; "look here; are you talking about prying open any of my doors?" - and with that she seized my arm. "What's the matter with you? What's the matter with you, shipmate?"
In as calm, but rapid a manner as possible, I gave her to understand the whole case. Unconsciously clapping the vinegar- cruet
to one side of her nose, she ruminated for an instant; then exclaimed - "No! I haven't seen it since I put it there." Running to a little closet under the landing of the stairs, she glanced in, and returning, told me that Queequeg's harpoon was missing. "He's killed himself," she cried. "It's unfort'nate stiggs done over again - there goes another counterpane - god pity his poor mother! - it will be the ruin of my house. Has the poor lad a sister? Where's that girl? - there, Betty, go to Snarles the Painter, and tell him to paint me a sign, with - "no suicides permitted here, and no smoking in the parlor;" - might as well kill both birds at once. Kill? The Lord be merciful to his ghost! What's that noise there? You, young man, avast there!"
And running up after me, she caught me as I was again trying to force open the door.
"I won't allow it; I won't have my premises spoiled. Go for the locksmith, there's one about a mile from here. But avast!" putting her hand in her side-pocket, "here's a key that'll fit, I guess; let's see." And with that, she turned it in the lock; but, alas! Queequeg's supplemental bolt remained unwithdrawn within.
"Have to burst it open," said I, and was running down the entry a little, for a good start, when the landlady caught at me, again vowing I should not break down her premises; but I tore from her, and with a sudden bodily rush dashed myself full against the mark.
With a prodigious noise the door flew open, and the knob slamming against the wall, sent the plaster to the ceiling; and there, good heavens! there sat Queequeg, altogether cool and self-collected; right in the middle of the room; squatting on his hams, and holding Yojo on top of his head. He looked neither one way nor the other way, but sat like a carved image with scarce a sign of active life.
"Queequeg," said I, going up to him, "Queequeg, what's the matter with you?"
"He hain't been a sittin' so all day, has he?" said the landlady.
But all we said, not a word could we drag out of him; I almost felt like pushing him over, so as to change his position, for it was almost intolerable, it seemed so painfully and unnaturally
constrained; especially, as in all probability he had been sitting so for upwards of eight or ten hours, going too without his regular meals.
"Mrs. Hussey," said I, "he's alive at all events; so leave us, if you please, and I will see to this strange affair myself."
Closing the door upon the landlady, I endeavored to prevail upon Queequeg to take a chair; but in vain. There he sat; and all he could do - for all my polite arts and blandishments - he would not move a peg, nor say a single word, nor even look at me, nor notice my presence in any the slightest way.
I wonder, thought I, if this can possibly be a part of his Ramadan; do they fast on their hams that way in his native island. It must be so; yes, it's part of his creed, I suppose; well, then, let him rest; he'll get up sooner or later, no doubt. It can't last for ever, thank God, and his Ramadan only comes once a year; and I don't believe it's very punctual then.
I went down to supper. After sitting a long time listening to the long stories of some sailors who had just come from a plum-pudding voyage, as they called it (that is, a short whaling-voyage in a schooner or brig, confined to the north of the line, in the Atlantic Ocean only); after listening to these plum-puddingers till nearly eleven o'clock, I went up stairs to go to bed, feeling quite sure by this time Queequeg must certainly have brought his Ramadan to a termination. But no; there he was just where I had left him; he had not stirred an inch. I began to grow vexed with him; it seemed so downright senseless and insane to be sitting there all day and half the night on his hams in a cold room, holding a piece of wood on his head.
"For heaven's sake, Queequeg, get up and shake yourself; get up and have some supper. You'll starve; you'll kill yourself, Queequeg." But not a word did he reply.
Despairing of him, therefore, I determined to go to bed and to sleep; and no doubt, before a great while, he would follow me. But previous to turning in, I took my heavy bearskin jacket, and threw it over him, as it promised to be a very cold night; and he had nothing but his ordinary round jacket on. For some time, do all I would, I could not get into the faintest doze. I had blown out the candle; and the mere thought of Queequeg -
not four feet off - sitting there in that uneasy position, stark alone in the cold and dark; this made me really wretched. Think of it; sleeping all night in the same room with a wide awake pagan on his hams in this dreary, unaccountable Ramadan!
But somehow I dropped off at last, and knew nothing more till break of day; when, looking over the bedside, there squatted Queequeg, as if he had been screwed down to the floor. But as soon as the first glimpse of sun entered the window, up he got, with stiff and grating joints, but with a cheerful look; limped towards me where I lay; pressed his forehead again against mine; and said his Ramadan was over.
Now, as I before hinted, I have no objection to any person's religion, be it what it may, so long as that person does not kill or insult any other person, because that other person don't believe it also. But when a man's religion becomes really frantic; when it is a positive torment to him; and, in fine, makes this earth of ours an uncomfortable inn to lodge in; then I think it high time to take that individual aside and argue the point with him.
And just so I now did with Queequeg. "Queequeg," said I, "get into bed now, and lie and listen to me." I then went on, beginning with the rise and progress of the primitive religions, and coming down to the various religions of the present time, during which time I labored to show Queequeg that all these Lents, Ramadans, and prolonged ham-squattings in cold, cheerless rooms were stark nonsense; bad for the health; useless for the soul; opposed, in short, to the obvious laws of Hygiene and common sense. I told him, too, that he being in other things such an extremely sensible and sagacious savage, it pained me, very badly pained me, to see him now so deplorably foolish about this ridiculous Ramadan of his. Besides, argued I, fasting makes the body cave in; hence the spirit caves in; and all thoughts born of a fast must necessarily be half-starved. This is the reason why most dyspeptic religionists cherish such melancholy notions about their hereafters. In one word, Queequeg, said I, rather digressively; hell is an idea first born on an undigested apple-dumpling; and since then perpetuated through the hereditary dyspepsias nurtured by Ramadans.
I then asked Queequeg whether he himself was ever troubled with dyspepsia; expressing the idea very plainly, so that he could take it in. He said no; only upon one memorable occasion. It was after a great feast given by his father the king, on the gaining of a great battle wherein fifty of the enemy had been killed by about two o'clock in the afternoon, and all cooked and eaten that very evening.
"No more, Queequeg," said I, shuddering; "that will do;" for I knew the inferences without his further hinting them. I had seen a sailor who had visited that very island, and he told me that it was the custom, when a great battle had been gained there, to barbecue all the slain in the yard or garden of the victor; and then, one by one, they were placed in great wooden trenchers, and garnished round like a pilau, with breadfruit and cocoanuts; and with some parsley in their mouths, were sent round with the victor's compliments to all his friends, just as though these presents were so many Christmas turkeys.
After all, I do not think that my remarks about religion made much impression upon Queequeg. Because, in the first place, he somehow seemed dull of hearing on that important subject, unless considered from his own point of view; and, in the second place, he did not more than one third understand me, couch my ideas simply as I would; and, finally, he no doubt thought he knew a good deal more about the true religion than I did. He looked at me with a sort of condescending concern and compassion, as though he thought it a great pity that such a sensible young man should be so hopelessly lost to evangelical pagan piety.
At last we rose and dressed; and Queequeg, taking a prodigiously hearty breakfast of chowders of all sorts, so that the landlady should not make much profit by reason of his Ramadan, we sallied out to board the Pequod, sauntering along, and picking our teeth with halibut bones. *x* *x moby_018.html/Chapter xviii - HIS MARK*
As we were walking down the end of the wharf towards the ship, Queequeg carrying his harpoon, Captain Peleg in his gruff voice loudly hailed us from his wigwam, saying he had not suspected my friend was a cannibal, and furthermore announcing that he let no cannibals on board that craft, unless they previously produced their papers.
"What do you mean by that, Captain Peleg?" said I, now jumping on the bulwarks, and leaving my comrade standing on the wharf.
"I mean," he replied, "he must show his papers."
"Yea," said Captain Bildad in his hollow voice, sticking his head from behind Peleg's, out of the wigwam. "He must show that he's converted. Son of darkness," he added, turning to Queequeg, "art thou at present in communion with any christian church?"
"Why," said I, "he's a member of the First Congregational Church." Here be it said, that many tattooed savages sailing in Nantucket ships at last come to be converted into the churches.
"First Congregational Church," cried Bildad, "what! that worships in Deacon Deuteronomy Coleman's meeting-house?" and so saying, taking out his spectacles, he rubbed them with his great yellow bandana handkerchief, and putting them on very carefully, came out of the wigwam, and leaning stiffly over the bulwarks, took a good long look at Queequeg.
"How long hath he been a member?" he then said, turning to me; "not very long, I rather guess, young man."
"No," said Peleg, "and he hasn't been baptized right either, or it would have washed some of that devil's blue off his face."
"Do tell, now," cried Bildad, "is this Philistine a regular member of Deacon Deuteronomy's meeting? I never saw him going there, and I pass it every Lord's day."
"I don't know anything about Deacon Deuteronomy or his meeeting," said I, "all I know is, that Queequeg here is a born member of the First Congregational Church. He is a deacon himself, Queequeg is."
"Young man," said Bildad sternly, "thou art skylarking with me - explain thyself, thou young Hittite. What church dost thee mean? answer me."
Finding myself thus hard pushed, I replied. "I mean, sir, the same ancient Catholic Church to which you and I, and Captain Peleg there, and Queequeg here, and all of us, and every mother's son and soul of us belong; the great and everlasting First Congregation of this whole worshipping world; we all belong to that; only some of us cherish some queer crotchets noways touching the grand belief; in that we all join hands."
Splice, thou mean'st splice hands," cried Peleg, drawing nearer. "Young man, you'd better ship for a missionary, instead of a fore-mast hand; I never heard a better sermon. Deacon Deuteronomy - why Father Mapple himself couldn't beat it, and he's reckoned something. Come aboard, come aboard; never mind about the papers. I say, tell Quohog there - what's that you call him? tell Quohog to step along. By the great anchor, what a harpoon he's got there! looks like good stuff that; and he handles it about right. I say, Quohog, or whatever your name is, did you ever stand in the head of a whale-boat? did you ever strike a fish?"
Without saying a word, Queequeg, in his wild sort of way, jumped upon the bulwarks, from thence into the bows of one of the whale-boats hanging to the side; and then bracing his left knee, and poising his harpoon, cried out in some such way as this: -
"Cap'ain, you see him small drop tar on water dere? You see him? well, spose him one whale eye, well, den!" and taking sharp aim at it, he darted the iron right over old Bildad's broad brim, clean across the ship's decks, and struck the glistening tar spot out of sight.
"Now," said Queequeg, quietly hauling in the line, "spos-ee him whale-e eye; why, dad whale dead."
"Quick, Bildad," said Peleg, his partner, who, aghast at the
close vicinity of the flying harpoon, had retreated towards the cabin gangway. "Quick, I say, you Bildad, and get the ship's papers. We must have Hedgehog there, I mean Quohog, in one of our boats. Look ye, Quohog, we'll give ye the ninetieth lay, and that's more than ever was given a harpooneer yet out of Nantucket."
So down we went into the cabin, and to my great joy Queequeg was soon enrolled among the same ship's company to which I myself belonged.
When all preliminaries were over and Peleg had got everything ready for signing, he turned to me and said, "I guess Quohog there don't know how to write, does he? I say, Quohog, blast ye! dost thou sign thy name or make thy mark?"
But at this question,
Queequeg, who had twice or thrice before taken part in similar
ceremonies, looked no ways abashed; but taking the offered pen,
copied upon the paper, in the proper place, an exact counterpart of
a queer round figure which was tattooed upon his arm; so that
through Captain Peleg's obstinate mistake touching his
appellative, it stood something like this: -
Meanwhile Captain Bildad sat earnestly and
steadfastly eyeing Queequeg, and at last rising solemnly and
fumbling in the huge pockets of his broad-skirted drab coat, took
out a bundle of tracts, and selecting one entitled "The Latter
Day Coming; or No Time to Lose," placed it in queequeg's hands,
and then grasping them and the book with both his, looked
earnestly into his eyes, and said, "Son of darkness, I must do
my duty by thee; I am part owner of this ship, and feel concerned
for the souls of all its crew; if thou still clingest to thy Pagan
ways, which I sadly fear, I beseech thee, remain not for aye a
Belial bondsman. Spurn the idol Bell, and the hideous dragon;
turn from the wrath to come; mind thine eye, I say; oh! goodness
gracious! steer clear of the fiery pit!"
Something of the salt sea yet lingered in old Bildad's
language, heterogeneously mixed with Scriptural and domestic
phrases.
"Avast there, avast there, Bildad, avast
now spoiling our harpooneer,"
cried Peleg. "Pious harpooneers never make good voyagers - it
takes the shark out of 'em; no harpooneer is worth a straw who
aint pretty sharkish. There was young Nat Swaine, once the
bravest boat-header out of all Nantucket and the Vineyard; he
joined the meeting, and never came to good. He got so frightened
about his plaguy soul, that he shrinked and sheered away from
whales, for fear of after-claps in case he got stove and went to
Davy Jones."
Peleg! Peleg!" said Bildad,
lifting his eyes and hands, "thou thyself, as I myself, hast
seen many a perilous time; thou knowest, Peleg, what it is to have
the fear of death; how, then, can'st thou prate in this ungodly
guise. Thou beliest thine own heart, Peleg. Tell me, when this
same Pequod here had her three masts overboard in that typhoon on
Japan, that same voyage when thou went mate with Captain Ahab,
did'st thou not think of Death and the Judgment then?"
"Hear him, hear him now," cried Peleg, marching across
the cabin, and thrusting his hands far down into his pockets, -
"hear him, all of ye. Think of that! When every moment we
thought the ship would sink! Death and the judgment then? What?
With all three masts making such an everlasting thundering against
the side; and every sea breaking over us, fore and aft. Think of
Death and the Judgment then? No! no time to think about Death
then. Life was what Captain Ahab and I was thinking of; and how to
save all hands - how to rig jury-masts - how to get into the
nearest port; that was what I was thinking of."
Bildad said no more, but buttoning up his coat, stalked on
deck, where we followed him. There he stood, very quietly
overlooking some sail-makers who were mending a top-sail in the
waist. Now and then he stooped to pick up a patch, or save an end
of tarred twine, which otherwise might have been wasted.
*x*
*x moby_019.html/Chapter xix - THE PROPHET*
"Shipmates, have ye shipped in that
ship?"
Queequeg and I had just left the Pequod,
and were sauntering away from the water, for the moment each
occupied with his own thoughts, when the above words were put to
us by a stranger, who, pausing before us, levelled his massive
forefinger at the vessel in question. He was but shabbily
apparelled in faded jacket and patched trowsers; a rag of a black
handkerchief investing his neck. A confluent small-pox had in all
directions flowed over his face, and left it like the complicated
ribbed bed of a torrent, when the rushing waters have been dried
up.
"Have ye shipped in her?" he
repeated.
"You mean the ship Pequod, I
suppose," said I, trying to gain a little more time for an
uninterrupted look at him.
"Aye, the Pequod
- that ship there," he said, drawing back his whole arm, and
then rapidly shoving it straight out from him, with the fixed
bayonet of his pointed finger darted full at the object.
"Yes," said I, "we have just signed the
articles."
"Anything down there about your
souls?"
"About what?"
"Oh,
perhaps you hav'n't got any," he said quickly. "No matter
though, I know many chaps that hav'n't got any, - good luck to
'em; and they are all the better off for it. A soul's a sort of
a fifth wheel to a wagon."
"What are you
jabbering about, shipmate?" said I.
"He's got enough, though, to make up for all
deficiencies of that sort in other chaps," abruptly said the
stranger, placing a nervous emphasis upon the word
he.
"Queequeg," said I, "let's go;
this fellow has broken loose from somewhere; he's talking about
something and somebody we don't know."
"Stop!" cried the stranger. "Ye said true - ye
hav'n't seen Old Thunder yet, have ye?"
"Who's
Old Thunder?" said I, again riveted with the insane earnestness
of his manner.
"Captain Ahab."
"What! the captain of our ship, the Pequod?"
"Aye, among some of us old sailor chaps, he goes by that
name. Ye hav'n't seen him yet, have ye?"
"No,
we hav'n't. He's sick they say, but is getting better, and will
be all right again before long."
"All right
again before long!" laughed the stranger, with a solemnly
derisive sort of laugh. "Look ye; when captain Ahab is all
right, then this left arm of mine will be all right; not
before."
"What do you know about
him?"
"What did they tell you about
him? Say that!"
"They didn't tell much of
anything about him; only I've heard that he's a good whale-hunter,
and a good captain to his crew."
"That's true,
that's true - yes, both true enough. But you must jump when he
gives an order. Step and growl; growl and go - that's the word
with Captain Ahab. But nothing about that thing that happened to
him off Cape Horn, long ago, when he lay like dead for three days
and nights; nothing about that deadly skrimmage with the Spaniard
afore the altar in Santa? - heard nothing about that, eh?
Nothing about the silver calabash he spat into? And nothing about
his losing his leg last voyage, according to the prophecy. Didn't
ye hear a word about them matters and something more, eh? No, I
don't think ye did; how could ye? Who knows it? Not all
Nantucket, I guess. But hows'ever, mayhap, ye've heard tell about
the leg, and how he lost it; aye, ye have heard of that, I dare
say. Oh yes, that every one knows a'most - I mean they
know he's only one leg; and that a parmacetti took the other
off."
"My friend," said I, "what all this
gibberish of yours is about, I don't know, and I don't much care;
for it seems to me that you must be a little damaged in the head.
But if you are speaking of Captain Ahab, of that ship there, the
Pequod, then let me tell you, that I know all about the loss of
his leg."
"All about it, eh - sure you do?
- all?"
"Pretty sure."
With
finger pointed and eye levelled at the Pequod, the beggar-like
stranger stood a moment, as if in a troubled reverie; then
starting a little, turned and said: - "Ye've shipped, have
ye? Names down on the papers? Well, well, what's signed, is
signed; and what's to be, will be; and then again, perhaps it wont
be, after all. Any how, it's all fixed and arranged a'ready; and
some sailors or other must go with him, I suppose; as well these
as any other men, God pity 'em! Morning to ye, shipmates,
morning; the ineffable heavens bless ye; I'm sorry I stopped
ye."
"Look here, friend," said I, "if you
have anything important to tell us, out with it; but if you are
only trying to bamboozle us, you are mistaken in your game; that's
all I have to say."
"And it's said very well,
and I like to hear a chap talk up that way; you are just the man
for him - the likes of ye. Morning to ye, shipmates, morning!
Oh, when ye get there, tell 'em I've concluded not to make one of
'em."
"Ah, my dear fellow, you can't fool us
that way - you can't fool us. It is the easiest thing in the
world for a man to look as if he had a great secret in
him."
"Morning to ye, shipmates,
morning."
"Morning it is," said I. "Come
along, Queequeg, let's leave this crazy man. But stop, tell me
your name, will you?"
"Elijah."
Elijah! thought I, and we walked away, both commenting,
after each other's fashion, upon this ragged old sailor; and
agreed that he was nothing but a humbug, trying to be a bugbear.
But we had not gone perhaps above a hundred yards, when chancing
to turn a corner, and looking back as I did so, who should be seen
but Elijah following us, though at a distance. Somehow, the sight
of him struck me so, that I said nothing to Queequeg of his being
behind, but passed on with my comrade, anxious to see whether the
stranger would turn the same corner that we did. He did; and then
it seemed to me that he was dogging us, but with what intent I
could not for the life of me imagine. This circumstance, coupled
with his ambiguous, half-hinting, half-revealing, shrouded sort of
talk, now begat in me
all kinds of vague wonderments and half-apprehensions, and all
connected with the Pequod; and Captain Ahab; and the leg he had
lost; and the Cape Horn fit; and the silver calabash; and what
Captain Peleg had said of him, when I left the ship the day
previous; and the prediction of the squaw Tistig; and the voyage
we had bound ourselves to sail; and a hundred other shadowy
things.
I was resolved to satisfy myself whether this
ragged Elijah was really dogging us or not, and with that intent
crossed the way with Queequeg, and on that side of it retraced our
steps. But Elijah passed on, without seeming to notice us. This
relieved me; and once more, and finally as it seemed to me, I
pronounced him in my heart, a humbug.
*x*
*x moby_020.html/Chapter xx - ALL ASTIR*
A day or two passed, and there was great activity
aboard the Pequod. Not only were the old sails being mended, but
new sails were coming on board, and bolts of canvas, and coils of
rigging; in short, everything betokened that the ship's
preparations were hurrying to a close. Captain Peleg seldom or
never went ashore, but sat in his wigwam keeping a sharp look-out
upon the hands: Bildad did all the purchasing and providing at the
stores; and the men employed in the hold and on the rigging were
working till long after night-fall.
On the day
following Queequeg's signing the articles, word was given at all
the inns where the ship's company were stopping, that their chests
must be on board before night, for there was no telling how soon
the vessel might be sailing. So Queequeg and I got down our
traps, resolving, however, to sleep ashore till the last. But it
seems they always give very long notice in these cases, and the
ship did not sail for several days. But no wonder; there was a
good deal to be done, and there
is no telling how many things to be thought of, before the Pequod
was fully equipped.
Every one knows what a multitude
of things - beds, sauce-pans, knives and forks, shovels and
tongs, napkins, nut-crackers, and what not, are indispensable to
the business of housekeeping. Just so with whaling, which
necessitates a three-years' housekeeping upon the wide ocean, far
from all grocers, costermongers, doctors, bakers, and bankers.
And though this also holds true of merchant vessels, yet not by
any means to the same extent as with whalemen. For besides the
great length of the whaling voyage, the numerous articles peculiar
to the prosecution of the fishery, and the impossibility of
replacing them at the remote harbors usually frequented, it must
be remembered, that of all ships, whaling vessels are the most
exposed to accidents of all kinds, and especially to the
destruction and loss of the very things upon which the success of
the voyage most depends. Hence, the spare boats, spare spars, and
spare lines and harpoons, and spare everythings, almost, but a
spare captain and duplicate ship.
At the period of
our arrival at the Island, the heaviest storage of the Pequod had
been almost completed; comprising her beef, bread, water, fuel,
and iron hoops and staves. But, as before hinted, for some time
there was a continual fetching and carrying on board of divers
odds and ends of things, both large and small.
Chief
among those who did this fetching and carrying was Captain
Bildad's sister, a lean old lady of a most determined and
indefatigable spirit, but withal very kindhearted, who seemed
resolved that, if she could help it, nothing should be found
wanting in the Pequod, after once fairly getting to sea. At one
time she would come on board with a jar of pickles for the
steward's pantry; another time with a bunch of quills for the
chief mate's desk, where he kept his log; a third time with a roll
of flannel for the small of some one's rheumatic back. Never did
any woman better deserve her name, which was Charity - Aunt
Charity, as everybody called her. And like a sister of charity
did this charitable Aunt Charity bustle about hither and thither,
ready to turn her hand and heart to anything that promised to yield
safety, comfort, and consolation to all on board
a ship in which her beloved brother Bildad was concerned, and in
which she herself owned a score or two of well-saved
dollars.
But it was startling to see this excellent
hearted Quakeress coming on board, as she did the last day, with
a long oil-ladle in one hand, and a still longer whaling lance in
the other. Nor was Bildad himself nor Captain Peleg at all
backward. As for Bildad, he carried about with him a long list of
the articles needed, and at every fresh arrival, down went his
mark opposite that article upon the paper. Every once and a while
Peleg came hobbling out of his whalebone den, roaring at the men
down the hatchways, roaring up to the riggers at the mast-head,
and then concluded by roaring back into his wigwam.
During these days of preparation, Queequeg and I often
visited the craft, and as often I asked about Captain Ahab, and
how he was, and when he was going to come on board his ship. To
these questions they would answer, that he was getting better and
better, and was expected aboard every day; meantime, the two
Captains, Peleg and Bildad, could attend to everything necessary
to fit the vessel for the voyage. If I had been downright honest
with myself, I would have seen very plainly in my heart that I did
but half fancy being committed this way to so long a voyage,
without once laying my eyes on the man who was to be the absolute
dictator of it, so soon as the ship sailed out upon the open sea.
But when a man suspects any wrong, it sometimes happens that if he
be already involved in the matter, he insensibly strives to cover
up his suspicions even from himself. And much this way it was
with me. I said nothing, and tried to think nothing.
At last it was given out that some time next day the ship
would certainly sail. So next morning, Queequeg and I took a very
early start.
*x*
*x moby_021.html/Chapter xxi - GOING ABOARD*
It was nearly six o'clock, but only grey imperfect
misty dawn, when we drew nigh the wharf.
"There
are some sailors running ahead there, if I see right," said I
to Queequeg, "it can't be shadows; she's off by sunrise, I
guess; come on!"
"Avast!" cried a voice,
whose owner at the same time coming close behind us, laid a hand
upon both our shoulders, and then insinuating himself between us,
stood stooping forward a little, in the uncertain twilight,
strangely peering from Queequeg to me. It was Elijah.
"Going aboard? Hands off, will you," said I.
"Lookee here," said Queequeg, shaking himself," go
'way!"
"Aint going aboard, then?"
"Yes, we are," said I, "but what business is that
of yours? Do you know, Mr. Elijah, that I consider you a little
impertinent?"
"No, no, no; I wasn't aware of
that," said Elijah, slowly and wonderingly looking from me to
Queequeg, with the most unaccountable glances.
"Elijah," said I, "you will oblige my friend and me
by withdrawing. We are going to the Indian and Pacific Oceans,
and would prefer not to be detained."
"Ye be,
be ye? Coming back afore breakfast?"
"He's
cracked, Queequeg," said I, "come on."
"Holloa!" cried stationary Elijah, hailing us when we
had removed a few paces.
"Never mind him,"
said I, "Queequeg, come on."
But he stole up to
us again, and suddenly clapping his hand on my shoulder,
said - "Did ye see anything looking like men going towards
that ship a while ago?"
Struck by this plain
matter-of-fact question, I answered, saying,
"Yes, I thought I did see four or five men; but it was too dim
to be sure."
"Very dim, very dim," said
Elijah. "Morning to ye."
Once more we quitted
him; but once more he came softly after us; and touching my
shoulder again, said, "See if you can find 'em now, will
ye?"
"Find who?"
"Morning
to ye! morning to ye!" he rejoined, again moving off.
"Oh! I was going to warn ye against - but never mind, never
mind - it's all one, all in the family too; - sharp frost this
morning, ain't it? Good bye to ye. Shan't see ye again very
soon, I guess; unless it's before the Grand Jury." And with
these cracked words he finally departed, leaving me, for the
moment, in no small wonderment at his frantic impudence.
At last, stepping on board the Pequod, we found everything
in profound quiet, not a soul moving. The cabin entrance was
locked within; the hatches were all on, and lumbered with coils of
rigging. Going forward to the forecastle, we found the slide of
the scuttle open. Seeing a light, we went down, and found only an
old rigger there, wrapped in a tattered pea-jacket. He was thrown
at whole length upon two chests, his face downwards and inclosed
in his folded arms. The profoundest slumber slept upon
him.
"Those sailors we saw, Queequeg, where can
they have gone to?" said I, looking dubiously at the sleeper.
But it seemed that, when on the wharf, Queequeg had not at all
noticed what I now alluded to; hence I would have thought myself
to have been optically deceived in that matter, were it not for
Elijah's otherwise inexplicable question. But I beat the thing
down; and again marking the sleeper, jocularly hinted to Queequeg
that perhaps we had best sit up with the body; telling him to
establish himself accordingly. He put his hand upon the sleeper's
rear, as though feeling if it was soft enough; and then, without
more ado, sat quietly down there.
"Gracious!
Queequeg, don't sit there," said I.
"Oh! perry
dood seat," said Queequeg, "my country way; won't hurt him
face."
"Face!" said I, "call that his
face? very benevolent countenance
then; but how hard he breathes, he's heaving himself; get off,
Queequeg, you are heavy, it's grinding the face of the poor. Get
off, Queequeg! Look, he'll twitch you off soon. I wonder he
don't wake."
Queequeg removed himself to just
beyond the head of the sleeper, and lighted his tomahawk pipe. I
sat at the feet. We kept the pipe passing over the sleeper, from
one to the other. Meanwhile, upon questioning him in his broken
fashion, Queequeg gave me to understand that, in his land, owing
to the absence of settees and sofas of all sorts, the king,
chiefs, and great people generally, were in the custom of
fattening some of the lower orders for ottomans; and to furnish a
house comfortably in that respect, you had only to buy up eight or
ten lazy fellows, and lay them round in the piers and alcoves.
Besides, it was very convenient on an excursion; much better than
those garden-chairs which are convertible into walking-sticks;
upon occasion, a chief calling his attendant, and desiring him to
make a settee of himself under a spreading tree, perhaps in some
damp marshy place.
While narrating these things,
every time Queequeg received the tomahawk from me, he flourished
the hatchet-side of it over the sleeper's head.
"What's that for, Queequeg?"
"Perry
easy, kill-e; oh! perry easy!"
He was going on
with some wild reminiscences about his tomahawk-pipe, which, it
seemed, had in its two uses both brained his foes and soothed his
soul, when we were directly attracted to the sleeping rigger. The
strong vapor now completely filling the contracted hole, it began
to tell upon him. He breathed with a sort of muffledness; then
seemed troubled in the nose; then revolved over once or twice;
then sat up and rubbed his eyes.
"Holloa!" he
breathed at last, "who be ye smokers?"
"Shipped men," answered I, "when does she
sail?"
"Aye, aye, ye are going in her, be ye?
She sails to-day. The Captain came aboard last night."
"What Captain? - Ahab?"
"Who but him
indeed?"
I was going to ask him some further questions concerning
Ahab, when we heard a noise on deck.
"Holloa!
Starbuck's astir," said the rigger. "He's a lively chief
mate, that; good man, and a pious; but all alive now, I must turn
to." And so saying he went on deck, and we followed."
It was now clear sunrise. Soon the crew came on board in
twos and threes; the riggers bestirred themselves; the mates were
actively engaged; and several of the shore people were busy in
bringing various last things on board. Meanwhile Captain Ahab
remained invisibly enshrined within his cabin.
*x*
*x moby_022.html/Chapter xxii - MERRY CHRISTMAS*
At length, towards noon, upon the final dismissal of
the ship's riggers, and after the Pequod had been hauled out from
the wharf, and after the ever-thoughtful Charity had come off in a
whaleboat, with her last gift - a night-cap for Stubb, the second
mate, her brother-in-law, and a spare bible for the steward -
after all this, the two captains, Peleg and Bildad, issued from
the cabin, and turning to the chief mate, Peleg said:
"Now, Mr. Starbuck, are you sure everything is right?
Captain Ahab is all ready - just spoke to him - nothing more to
be got from shore, eh? Well, call all hands, then. Muster 'em
aft here - blast 'em!"
"No need of profane
words, however great the hurry, Peleg," said Bildad, "but
away with thee, friend Starbuck, and do our bidding."
How now! Here upon the very point of starting for the
voyage, Captain Peleg and Captain Bildad were going it with a high
hand on the quarter-deck, just as if they were to be joint-
commanders at sea, as well as to all appearances in port. And, as
for Captain Ahab, no sign of him was yet to be seen; Only, they
said he was in the cabin. But then, the idea was,
that his presence was by no means necessary in getting the ship
under weigh, and steering her well out to sea. Indeed, as that
was not at all his proper business, but the pilot's; and as he was
not yet completely recovered - so they said - therefore,
Captain Ahab stayed below. And all this seemed natural enough;
especially as in the merchant service many captains never show
themselves on deck for a considerable time after heaving up the
anchor, but remain over the cabin table, having a farewell
merrymaking with their shore friends, before they quit the ship
for good with the pilot.
But there was not much
chance to think over the matter, for Captain Peleg was now all
alive. He seemed to do most of the talking and commanding, and not
Bildad.
"Aft here, ye sons of bachelors," he
cried, as the sailors lingered at the main-mast. "Mr.
Starbuck, drive 'em aft."
"Strike the tent
there! - was the next order. As I hinted before, this whalebone
marquee was never pitched except in port; and on board the Pequod,
for thirty years, the order to strike the tent was well known to
be the next thing to heaving up the anchor.
"Man the capstan! Blood and thunder! - jump!" - was the next
command, and the crew sprang for the handspikes.
Now, in getting under weigh, the station generally occupied
by the pilot is the forward part of the ship. And here Bildad,
who, with Peleg, be it known, in addition to his other offices, was
one of the licensed pilots of the port - he being suspected to
have got himself made a pilot in order to save the Nantucket
pilot-fee to all the ships he was concerned in, for he never
piloted any other craft - Bildad, I say, might now be seen
actively engaged in looking over the bows for the approaching
anchor, and at intervals singing what seemed a dismal stave of
psalmody, to cheer the hands at the windlass, who roared forth
some sort of a chorus about the girls in Booble Alley, with hearty
good will. Nevertheless, not three days previous, Bildad had told
them that no profane songs would be allowed on board the Pequod,
particularly in getting under weigh; and Charity, his sister, had
placed a small choice copy of Watts in each seaman's berth.
Meantime, overseeing the other part of the ship, Captain
Peleg
ripped and swore astern in the most frightful manner. I almost
thought he would sink the ship before the anchor could be got up;
involuntarily I paused on my handspike, and told Queequeg to do
the same, thinking of the perils we both ran, in starting on the
voyage with such a devil for a pilot. I was comforting myself,
however, with the thought that in pious Bildad might be found some
salvation, spite of his seven hundred and seventy-seventh lay;
when I felt a sudden sharp poke in my rear, and turning round, was
horrified at the apparition of Captain Peleg in the act of
withdrawing his leg from my immediate vicinity. That was my first
kick.
"Is that the way they heave in the marchant
service?" he roared. "Spring, thou sheep-head; spring, and
break thy backbone! why don't ye spring, i say, all of
ye - spring! Quohog! spring, thou chap with the red whiskers;
spring there, Scotchcap; spring, thou green pants. Spring, I say,
all of ye, and spring your eyes out!" And so saying, he moved
along the windlass, here and there using his leg very freely,
while imperturbable Bildad kept leading off with his psalmody.
Thinks I, Captain Peleg must have been drinking something to-
day.
At last the anchor was up, the sails were set,
and off we glided. It was a short, cold Christmas; and as the
short northern day merged into night, we found ourselves almost
broad upon the wintry ocean, whose freezing spray cased us in ice,
as in polished armor. The long rows of teeth on the bulwarks
glistened in the moonlight; and like the white ivory tusks of some
huge elephant, vast curving icicles depended from the bows.
Lank Bildad, as pilot, headed the first watch, and ever and
anon, as the old craft deep dived into the green seas, and sent
the shivering frost all over her, and the winds howled, and the
cordage rang, his steady notes were heard, -
"Sweet fields beyond the swelling flood,
Stand dressed in living green.
So to the Jews old Canaan stood,
While Jordan rolled between."
Never did those sweet words sound more sweetly to me than
then. They were full of hope and fruition. Spite of this frigid
winter night in the boisterous Atlantic, spite of my wet feet and
wetter jacket, there was yet, it then seemed to me, many a
pleasant haven in store; and meads and glades so eternally vernal,
that the grass shot up by the spring, untrodden, unwilted, remains
at midsummer.
At last we gained such an offing, that
the two pilots were needed no longer. The stout sail-boat that
had accompanied us began ranging alongside.
It was
curious and not unpleasing, how Peleg and Bildad were affected at
this juncture, especially Captain Bildad. For loath to depart,
yet; very loath to leave, for good, a ship bound on so long and
perilous a voyage - beyond both stormy Capes; a ship in which
some thousands of his hard earned dollars were invested; a ship, in
which an old shipmate sailed as captain; a man almost as old as he,
once more starting to encounter all the terrors of the pitiless
jaw; loath to say good-bye to a thing so every way brimful of
every interest to him, - poor old Bildad lingered long; paced
the deck with anxious strides" ran down into the cabin to speak
another farewell word there; again came on deck, and looked to
windward; looked towards the wide and endless waters, only bounded
by the far-off unseen Eastern Continents; looked towards the land,
looked aloft; looked right and left; looked everywhere and
nowhere; and at last, mechanically coiling a rope upon its pin,
convulsively grasped stout Peleg by the hand, and holding up a
lantern, for a moment stood gazing heroically in his face, as much
as to say, "Nevertheless, friend Peleg, I can stand it; yes, I
can."
As for Peleg himself, he took it more like
a philosopher; but for all his philosophy, there was a tear
twinkling in his eye, when the lantern came too near. And he,
too, did not a little run from cabin to deck - now a word below,
and now a word with Starbuck, the chief mate.
But, at
last, he turned to his comrade, with a final sort of look about
him, - "Captain Bildad - come, old shipmate, we must go.
Back the main-yard there! Boat ahoy! Stand by to come close
alongside, now! Careful, careful! - come, Bildad, boy - say
your last. Luck to ye, Starbuck - luck to ye, Mr. Stubb - luck
to ye,
Mr. Flask - good-bye, and good luck to ye all - and this day
three years I'll have a hot supper smoking for ye in old
Nantucket. Hurrah and away!"
"God bless ye,
and have ye in His holy keeping, men," murmured old Bildad,
almost incoherently. "I hope ye'll have fine weather now, so
that Captain Ahab may soon be moving among ye - a pleasant sun
is all he needs, and ye'll have plenty of them in the tropic
voyage ye go. Be careful in the hunt, ye mates. Don't stave the
boats needlessly, ye harpooneers; good white cedar plank is raised
full three per cent. within the year. Don't forget your prayers,
either. Mr Starbuck, mind that cooper don't waste the spare
staves. Oh! the sail-needles are in the green locker! Don't
whale it too much a' Lord's days, men; but don't miss a fair
chance either, that's rejecting Heaven's good gifts. Have an eye
to the molasses tierce, Mr. Stubb; it was a little leaky, I
thought. If ye touch at the islands, Mr. Flask, beware of
fornication. Good-bye, good-bye! Don't keep that cheese too long
down in the hold, Mr. Starbuck; it'll spoil. Be careful with the
butter - twenty cents the pound it was, and mind ye,
if - "
"Come, come, Captain Bildad; stop
palavering, - away!" and with that, Peleg hurried him over
the side, and both dropt into the boat.
Ship and
boat diverged; the cold, damp night breeze blew between; a
screaming gull flew overhead; the two hulls wildly rolled; we gave
three heavy-hearted cheers, and blindly plunged like fate into the
lone Atlantic.
*x*
*x moby_023.html/Chapter xxiii - THE LEE SHORE*
Some chapters back, one Bulkington was spoken of, a
tall, new-landed mariner, encountered in New Bedford at the
inn.
When on that shivering winter's night, the Pequod
thrust her vindictive bows into the cold malicious waves, who
should I see
standing at her helm but Bulkington! I looked with sympathetic awe
and fearfulness upon the man, who in mid-winter just landed from
a four years' dangerous voyage, could so unrestingly push off
again for still another tempestuous term. The land seemed
scorching to his feet. Wonderfullest things are ever the
unmentionable; deep memories yield no epitaphs; this six-inch
chapter is the stoneless grave of Bulkington. Let me only say that
it fared with him as with the storm-tossed ship, that miserably
drives along the leeward land. The port would fain give succor;
the port is pitiful; in the port is safety, comfort, hearthstone,
supper, warm blankets, friends, all that's kind to our
mortalities. But in that gale, the port, the land, is that ship's
direst jeopardy; she must fly all hospitality; one touch of land,
though it but graze the keel, would make her shudder through and
through. With all her might she crowds all sail off shore; in so
doing, fights 'gainst the very winds that fain would blow her
homeward; seeks all the lashed sea's landlessness again; for
refuge's sake forlornly rushing into peril; her only friend her
bitterest foe!
Know ye, now, Bulkington? Glimpses do
ye seem to see of that mortally intolerable truth; that all deep,
earnest thinking is but the intrepid effort of the soul to keep the
open independence of her sea; while the wildest winds of heaven
and earth conspire to cast her on the treacherous, slavish
shore?
But as in landlessness alone resides the
highest truth, shoreless, indefinite as God - so, better is it
to perish in that howling infinite, than be ingloriously dashed
upon the lee, even if that were safety! For worm-like, then, oh!
who would craven crawl to land! Terrors of the terrible! is all
this agony so vain? Take heart, take heart, O Bulkington! Bear
thee grimly, demigod! Up from the spray of thy ocean-perishing
- straight up, leaps thy apotheosis!
*x*
*x moby_024.html/Chapter xxiv - THE ADVOCATE*
As Queequeg and I are now fairly embarked in this
business of whaling; and as this business of whaling has somehow
come to be regarded among landsmen as a rather unpoetical and
disreputable pursuit; therefore, I am all anxiety to convince ye,
ye landsmen, of the injustice hereby done to us hunters of
whales.
In the first place, it may be deemed almost
superfluous to establish the fact, that among people at large, the
business of whaling is not accounted on a level with what are
called the liberal professions. If a stranger were introduced
into any miscellaneous metropolitan society, it would but slightly
advance the general opinion of his merits, were he presented to
the company as a harpooneer, say; and if in emulation of the naval
officers he should append the initials S. W. F. (Sperm Whale
Fishery) to his visiting card, such a procedure would be deemed
pre-eminently presuming and ridiculous.
Doubtless one
leading reason why the world declines honoring us whalemen, is
this: they think that, at best, our vocation amounts to a
butchering sort of business; and that when actively engaged
therein, we are surrounded by all manner of defilements. Butchers
we are, that is true. But butchers, also, and butchers of the
bloodiest badge have been all Martial Commanders whom the world
invariably delights to honor. And as for the matter of the alleged
uncleanliness of our business, ye shall soon be initiated into
certain facts hitherto pretty generally unknown, and which, upon
the whole, will triumphantly plant the sperm whale-ship at least
among the cleanliest things of this tidy earth. But even granting
the charge in question to be true; what disordered slippery decks
of a whale-ship are comparable to the unspeakable carrion of those
battle-fields from which so many soldiers return to drink in all
ladies' plaudits? And if the
idea of peril so much enhances the popular conceit of the soldier's
profession; let me assure ye that many a veteran who has freely
marched up to a battery, would quickly recoil at the apparition of
the sperm whale's vast tail, fanning into eddies the air over his
head. For what are the comprehensible terrors of man compared
with the interlinked terrors and wonders of God!
But, though the world scouts at us whale hunters, yet does it
unwittingly pay us the profoundest homage; yea, an all-abounding
adoration! for almost all the tapers, lamps, and candles that burn
round the globe, burn, as before so many shrines, to our
glory!
But look at this matter in other lights;
weigh it in all sorts of scales; see what we whalemen are, and
have been.
Why did the Dutch in DeWitt's time have
admirals of their whaling fleets? Why did Louis XVI. of France,
at his own personal expense, fit out whaling ships from Dunkirk,
and politely invite to that town some score or two of families
from our own island of Nantucket? Why did Britain between the
years 1750 and 1788 pay to her whalemen in bounties upwards of
lb. 1,000,000? And lastly, how comes it that we whalemen of
America now outnumber all the rest of the banded whalemen in the
world; sail a navy of upwards of seven hundred vessels; manned by
eighteen thousand men; yearly consuming 4,000,000 of dollars; the
ships worth, at the time of sailing, $20,000,000; and every year
importing into our harbors a well reaped harvest of $7,000,000. How
comes all this, if there be not something puissant in
whaling?
But this is not the half; look again.
I freely assert, that the cosmopolite philosopher cannot,
for his life, point out one single peaceful influence, which
within the last sixty years has operated more potentially upon the
whole broad world, taken in one aggregate, than the high and mighty
business of whaling. One way and another, it has begotten events
so remarkable in themselves, and so continuously momentous in
their sequential issues, that whaling may well be regarded as that
Egyptian mother, who bore offspring themselves pregnant from her
womb. It would be a hopeless, endless task to catalogue all these
things. Let a handful suffice. For many
years past the whale-ship has been the pioneer in ferreting out the
remotest and least known parts of the earth. She has explored
seas and archipelagoes which had no chart, where no Cook or
Vancouver had ever sailed. If American and european men-of-war
now peacefully ride in once savage harbors, let them fire salutes
to the honor and glory of the whale-ship, which originally showed
them the way, and first interpreted between them and the savages.
They may celebrate as they will the heroes of Exploring
Expeditions, your Cookes, Your Krusensterns; but I say that scores
of anonymous Captains have sailed out of Nantucket, that were as
great, and greater than your Cooke and your Krusenstern. For in
their succorless emptyhandedness, they, in the heathenish sharked
waters, and by the beaches of unrecorded, javelin islands, battled
with virgin wonders and terrors that Cooke with all his marines and
muskets would not willingly have dared. All that is made such a
flourish of in the old South Sea Voyages, those things were but
the lifetime commonplaces of our heroic Nantucketers. Often,
adventures which Vancouver dedicates three chapters to, these men
accounted unworthy of being set down in the ship's common log.
Ah, the world! Oh, the world!
Until the whale
fishery rounded Cape Horn, no commerce but colonial, scarcely any
intercourse but colonial, was carried on between Europe and the
long line of the opulent Spanish provinces on the Pacific coast.
It was the whaleman who first broke through the jealous policy of
the Spanish crown, touching those colonies; and, if space
permitted, it might be distinctly shown how from those whalemen at
last eventuated the liberation of Peru, Chili, and Bolivia from
the yoke of Old Spain, and the establishment of the eternal
democracy in those parts.
That great America on the
other side of the sphere, Australia, was given to the enlightened
world by the whaleman. After its first blunder-born discovery by
a Dutchman, all other ships long shunned those shores as
pestiferously barbarous; but the whale-ship touched there. The
whale-ship is the true mother of that now mighty colony.
Moreover, in the infancy of the first Australian settlement, the
emigrants were several times saved
from starvation by the benevolent biscuit of the whale-ship luckily
dropping an anchor in their waters. The uncounted isles of all
Polynesia confess the same truth, and do commercial homage to the
whale-ship, that cleared the way for the missionary and the
merchant, and in many cases carried the primitive missionaries to
their first destinations. If that double-bolted land, Japan, is
ever to become hospitable, it is the whale-ship alone to whom the
credit will be due; for already she is on the threshold.
But if, in the face of all this, you still declare that
whaling has no aesthetically noble associations connected with it,
then am I ready to shiver fifty lances with you there, and unhorse
you with a split helmet every time.
The whale has no
famous author, and whaling no famous chronicler, you will
say.
The whale no famous author, and whaling no
famous chronicler? Who wrote the first account of our
Leviathan? Who but mighty Job! And who composed the first
narrative of a whaling-voyage? Who, but no less a prince than
Alfred the Great, who, with his own royal pen, took down the words
from Other, the Norwegian whale-hunter of those times! And who
pronounced our glowing eulogy in Parliament? Who, but Edmund
Burke!
True enough, but then whalemen themselves are
poor devils; they have no good blood in their veins.
No good blood in their veins? They have something
better than royal blood there. The grandmother of Benjamin
Franklin was Mary Morrel" afterwards, by marriage, Mary Folger,
one of the old settlers of Nantucket, and the ancestress to a long
line of Folgers and harpooneers - all kith and kin to noble
Benjamin - this day darting the barbed iron from one side of the
world to the other.
Good again; but then all confess
that somehow whaling is not respectable.
Whaling
not respectable? Whaling is imperial! By old English
statutory law, the whale is declared "a royal fish".
Oh, that's only nominal! The whale himself has never figured
in any grand imposing way.
The whale never
figured in any grand imposing way? In one of the mighty
triumphs given to a Roman general upon his entering the world's
capital, the bones of a whale, brought all the way from the Syrian
coast, were the most conspicuous object in the cymballed
procession.
Grant it, since you cite it; but, say
what you will, there is no real dignity in whaling.
No dignity in whaling? The dignity of our calling the
very heavens attest. Cetus is a constellation in the South! No
more! Drive down your hat in presence of the Czar, and take it
off to Queequeg! No more! I know a man that, in his lifetime,
has taken three hundred and fifty whales. I account that man more
honorable than that great captain of antiquity who boasted of
taking as many walled towns.
And, as for me, if, by
any possibility, there be any as yet undiscovered prime thing in
me; if I shall ever deserve any real repute in that small but high
hushed world which I might not be unreasonably ambitious of; if
hereafter I shall do anything that, upon the whole, a man might
rather have done than to have left undone; if, at my death, my
executors, or more properly my creditors, find any precious MSS.
in my desk, then here I prospectively ascribe all the honor and the
glory to whaling; for a whale-ship was my Yale College and my
Harvard.
*x*
*x moby_025.html/Chapter xxv - POSTSCRIPT*
In behalf of the dignity of whaling, I would fain
advance naught but substantiated facts. But after embattling his
facts, an advocate who should wholly suppress a not unreasonable
surmise, which might tell eloquently upon his cause - such an
advocate, would he not be blameworthy?
It is well
known that at the coronation of kings and queens, even modern
ones, a certain curious process of seasoning them for their
functions is gone through. There is a saltcellar of state, so
called, and there may be a caster of state. How they use the
salt, precisely - who knows? Certain I am, however, that a
king's head is solemnly oiled at his coronation, even as a head of
salad. Can it be, though, that they anoint it with a view of
making its interior run well, as they anoint machinery? Much
might be ruminated here, concerning the essential dignity of this
regal process, because in common life we esteem but meanly and
contemptibly a fellow who anoints his hair, and palpably smells of
that anointing. In truth, a mature man who uses hair-oil, unless
medicinally, that man has probably got a quoggy spot in him
somewhere. As a general rule, he can't amount to much in his
totality.
But the only thing to be considered here,
is this - what kind of oil is used at coronations? Certainly it
cannot be olive oil, nor macassar oil, nor castor oil, nor bear's
oil, nor train oil, nor cod-liver oil. What then can it possibly
be, but sperm oil in its unmanufactured, unpolluted state, the
sweetest of all oils?
Think of that, ye loyal
Britons! we whalemen supply your kings and queens with coronation
stuff!
*x*
*x moby_026.html/Chapter xxvi - KNIGHTS AND SQUIRES*
The chief mate of the Pequod was Starbuck, a native
of Nantucket, and a Quaker by descent. He was a long, earnest
man, and though born on an icy coast, seemed well adapted to endure
hot latitudes, his flesh being hard as twice-baked biscuit.
Transported to the Indies, his live blood would not spoil like
bottled
ale. He must have been born in some time of general drought and
famine, or upon one of those fast days for which his state is
famous. Only some thirty arid summers had he seen; those summers
had dried up all his physical superfluousness. But this, his
thinness, so to speak, seemed no more the token of wasting
anxieties and cares, than it seemed the indication of any bodily
blight. It was merely the condensation of the man. He was by no
means ill-looking; quite the contrary. His pure tight skin was an
excellent fit; and closely wrapped up in it, and embalmed with
inner health and strength, like a revivified Egyptian, this
Starbuck seemed prepared to endure for long ages to come, and to
endure always, as now; for be it Polar snow or torrid sun, like a
patent chronometer, his interior vitality was warranted to do well
in all climates. Looking into his eyes, you seemed to see there
the yet lingering images of those thousand-fold perils he had
calmly confronted through life. A staid, steadfast man, whose
life for the most part was a telling pantomime of action, and not
a tame chapter of sounds. Yet, for all his hardy sobriety and
fortitude, there were certain qualities in him which at times
affected, and in some cases seemed well nigh to overbalance all the
rest. Uncommonly conscientious for a seaman, and endued with a
deep natural reverence, the wild watery loneliness of his life did
therefore strongly incline him to superstition; but to that sort
of superstition, which in some organizations seems rather to
spring, somehow, from intelligence than from ignorance. Outward
portents and inward presentiments were his. And if at times these
things bent the welded iron of his soul, much more did his far-
away domestic memories of his young Cape wife and child, tend to
bend him still more from the original ruggedness of his nature,
and open him still further to those latent influences which, in
some honest-hearted men, restrain the gush of dare-devil daring,
so often evinced by others in the more perilous vicissitudes of
the fishery. "I will have no man in my boat," said
Starbuck, "who is not afraid of a whale." By this, he seemed
to mean, not only that the most reliable and useful courage was
that which arises from the fair estimation of the encountered
peril, but that an utterly fearless man is a far more dangerous
comrade than a coward.
"Aye, aye," said Stubb, the second mate, "Starbuck,
there, is as careful a man as you'll find anywhere in this
fishery." But we shall ere long see what that word
"careful" precisely means when used by a man like Stubb, or
almost any other whale hunter.
Starbuck was no
crusader after perils; in him courage was not a sentiment; but a
thing simply useful to him, and always at hand upon all mortally
practical occasions. Besides, he thought, perhaps, that in this
business of whaling, courage was one of the great staple outfits
of the ship, like her beef and her bread, and not to be foolishly
wasted. Wherefore he had no fancy for lowering for whales after
sun-down; nor for persisting in fighting a fish that too much
persisted in fighting him. For, thought Starbuck, I am here in
this critical ocean to kill whales for my living, and not to be
killed by them for theirs; and that hundreds of men had been so
killed Starbuck well knew. What doom was his own father's? Where,
in the bottomless deeps, could he find the torn limbs of his
brother?
With memories like these in him, and,
moreover, given to a certain superstitiousness, as has been said;
the courage of this Starbuck which could, nevertheless, still
flourish, must indeed have been extreme. But it was not in
reasonable nature that a man so organized, and with such terrible
experiences and remembrances as he had; it was not in nature that
these things should fail in latently engendering an element in
him, which, under suitable circumstances, would break out from its
confinement, and burn all his courage up. And brave as he might
be, it was that sort of bravery chiefly, visible in some intrepid
men, which, while generally abiding firm in the conflict with
seas, or winds, or whales, or any of the ordinary irrational
horrors of the world, yet cannot withstand those more terrific,
because more spiritual terrors, which sometimes menace you from
the concentrating brow of an enraged and mighty man.
But were the coming narrative to reveal, in any instance,
the complete abasement of poor Starbuck's fortitude, scarce might
I have the heart to write it; for it is a thing most sorrowful,
nay shocking, to expose the fall of valor in the soul. Men may
seem detestable as joint stock-companies and nations; knaves,
fools, and murderers there may be; men may have mean and meagre
faces; but man, in the ideal, is so noble and so sparkling, such
a grand and glowing creature, that over any ignominious blemish in
him all his fellows should run to throw their costliest robes.
That immaculate manliness we feel within ourselves, so far within
us, that it remains intact though all the outer character seem
gone; bleeds with keenest anguish at the undraped spectacle of a
valor-ruined man. Nor can piety itself, at such a shameful sight,
completely stifle her upbraidings against the permitting stars.
But this august dignity I treat of, is not the dignity of kings
and robes, but that abounding dignity which has no robed
investiture. Thou shalt see it shining in the arm that wields a
pick or drives a spike; that democratic dignity which, on all
hands, radiates without end from God; Himself! The great God
absolute! The centre and circumference of all democracy! His
omnipresence, our divine equality!
If, then, to
meanest mariners, and renegades and castaways, I shall hereafter
ascribe high qualities, though dark; weave round them tragic
graces; if even the most mournful, perchance the most abased,
among them all, shall at times lift himself to the exalted mounts;
if I shall touch that workman's arm with some ethereal light; if
I shall spread a rainbow over his disastrous set of sun; then
against all mortal critics bear me out in it, thou just spirit of
equality, which hast spread one royal mantle of humanity over all
my kind! Bear me out in it, thou great democratic God! who didst
not refuse to the swart convict, Bunyan, the pale, poetic pearl;
Thou who didst clothe with doubly hammered leaves of finest gold,
the stumped and paupered arm of old Cervantes; Thou who didst pick
up Andrew Jackson from the pebbles; who didst hurl him upon a war-
horse; who didst thunder him higher than a throne! Thou who, in
all Thy mighty, earthly marchings, ever cullest Thy selectest
champions from the kingly commons; bear me out in it, O
God!
*x*
*x moby_027.html/Chapter xxvii - KNIGHTS AND SQUIRES*
Stubb was the second mate. He was a native of Cape
Cod; and hence, according to local usage, was called a Cape-Cod-
man. A happy-go-lucky; neither craven nor valiant; taking perils
as they came with an indifferent air; and while engaged in the
most imminent crisis of the chase, toiling away, calm and
collected as a journeyman joiner engaged for the year. Good-
humored, easy, and careless, he presided over his whale-boat as if
the most deadly encounter were but a dinner, and his crew all
invited guests. He was as particular about the comfortable
arrangement of his part of the boat, as an old stage-driver is
about the snugness of his box. When close to the whale, in the
very death-lock of the fight, he handled his unpitying lance
coolly and off-handedly, as a whistling tinker his hammer. He
would hum over his old rigadig tunes while flank and flank with the
most exasperated monster. Long usage had, for this Stubb,
converted the jaws of death into an easy chair. What he thought
of death itself, there is no telling. Whether he ever thought of
it at all, might be a question; but, if he ever did chance to cast
his mind that way after a comfortable dinner, no doubt, like a
good sailor, he took it to be a sort of call of the watch to
tumble aloft, and bestir themselves there, about something which he
would find out when he obeyed the order, and not sooner.
What, perhaps, with other things, made Stubb such an
easygoing, unfearing man, so cheerily trudging off with the burden
of life in a world full of grave peddlers, all bowed to the ground
with their packs; what helped to bring about that almost impious
good-humor of his; that thing must have been his pipe. For, like
his nose, his short, black little pipe was one of the regular
features of his face. You would almost as soon have expected him
to turn out of his bunk without his nose as without his pipe.
He kept a whole row of pipes there ready loaded, stuck in a rack,
within easy reach of his hand; and, whenever he turned in, he
smoked them all out in succession, lighting one from the other to
the end of the chapter; then loading them again to be in readiness
anew. For, when Stubb dressed, instead of first putting his legs
into his trowsers, he put his pipe into his mouth.
I
say this continual smoking must have been one cause, at least, of
his peculiar disposition; for every one knows that this earthly
air, whether ashore or afloat, is terribly infected with the
nameless miseries of the numberless mortals who have died exhaling
it; and as in time of the cholera, some people go about with a
camphorated handkerchief to their mouths; so, likewise, against
all mortal tribulations, Stubb's tobacco smoke might have operated
as a sort of disinfecting agent.
The third mate was
Flask, a native of Tisbury, in Martha's Vineyard. A short, stout,
ruddy young fellow, very pugnacious concerning whales, who somehow
seemed to think that the great Leviathans had personally and
hereditarily affronted him; and therefore it was a sort of point
of honor with him, to destroy them whenever encountered. So
utterly lost was he to all sense of reverence for the many marvels
of their majestic bulk and mystic ways; and so dead to anything
like an apprehension of any possible danger from encountering
them; that in his poor opinion, the wondrous whale was but a
species of magnified mouse, or at least water-rat, requiring only
a little circumvention and some small application of time and
trouble in order to kill and boil. This ignorant, unconscious
fearlessness of his made him a little waggish in the matter of
whales; he followed these fish for the fun of it; and a three
years' voyage round Cape Horn was only a jolly joke that lasted
that length of time. As a carpenter's nails are divided into
wrought nails and cut nails; so mankind may be similarly divided.
Little Flask was one of the wrought ones; made to clinch tight and
last long. They called him King-Post on board of the Pequod;
because, in form, he could be well likened to the short, square
timber known by that name in Arctic whalers; and which by the
means of many radiating side timbers inserted in it, served to
brace the ship against the icy concussions of those battering
seas.
Now these three mates - Starbuck, Stubb, and
Flask, were
momentous men. They it was who by universal prescription commanded
three of the Pequod's boats as headsmen. In that grand order of
battle in which Captain Ahab would probably marshal his forces to
descend on the whales, these three headsmen were as captains of
companies. Or, being armed with their long keen whaling spears,
they were as a picked trio of lancers; even as the harpooneers
were flingers of javelins.
And since in this famous
fishery, each mate or headsman, like a Gothic Knight of old, is
always accompanied by his boat-steerer or harpooneer, who in
certain conjunctures provides him with a fresh lance, when the
former one has been badly twisted, or elbowed in the assault; and
moreover, as there generally subsists between the two, a close
intimacy and friendliness; it is therefore but meet, that in this
place we set down who the Pequod's harpooneers were, and to what
headsman each of them belonged.
First of all was
Queequeg, whom Starbuck, the chief mate, had selected for his
squire. But Queequeg is already known.
Next was
Tashtego, an unmixed Indian from Gay Head, the most westerly
promontory of Martha's Vineyard, where there still exists the last
remnant of a village of red men, which has long supplied the
neighboring island of Nantucket with many of her most daring
harpooneers. In the fishery, they usually go by the generic name
of Gay-Headers. Tashtego's long, lean, sable hair, his high cheek
bones, and black rounding eyes - for an Indian, Oriental in their
largeness, but Antarctic in their glittering expression - all
this sufficiently proclaimed him an inheritor of the unvitiated
blood of those proud warrior hunters, who, in quest of the great
New England moose, had scoured, bow in hand, the aboriginal
forests of the main. But no longer snuffing in the trail of the
wild beasts of the woodland, Tashtego now hunted in the wake of
the great whales of the sea; the unerring harpoon of the son fitly
replacing the infallible arrow of the sires. To look at the tawny
brawn of his lithe snaky limbs, you would almost have credited the
superstitions of some of the earlier Puritans, and half believed
this wild Indian to be a son of the Prince of the Powers of the
Air. Tashtego was Stubb the second mate's Squire.
Third among the harpooneers was Daggoo, a gigantic, coal-
black
negro-savage, with a lion-like tread - an Ahasuerus to behold.
Suspended from his ears were two golden hoops, so large that the
sailors called them ring-bolts, and would talk of securing the
top-sail halyards to them. In his youth Daggoo had voluntarily
shipped on board of a whaler, lying in a lonely bay on his native
coast. And never having been anywhere in the world but in Africa,
Nantucket, and the pagan harbors most frequented by whalemen; and
having now led for many years the bold life of the fishery in the
ships of owners uncommonly heedful of what manner of men they
shipped; daggoo retained all his barbaric virtues, and erect as a
giraffe, moved about the decks in all the pomp of six feet five in
his socks. There was a corporeal humility in looking up at him;
and a white man standing before him seemed a white flag come to
beg truce of a fortress. Curious to tell, this imperial negro,
Ahasuerus Daggoo, was the Squire of little Flask, who looked like
a chess-man beside him. As for the residue of the Pequod's
company, be it said, that at the present day not one in two of the
many thousand men before the mast employed in the American whale
fishery, are Americans born, though pretty nearly all the officers
are. Herein it is the same with the American whale fishery as
with the American army and military and merchant navies, and the
engineering forces employed in the construction of the American
Canals and Railroads. The same, I say, because in all these cases
the native American liberally provides the brains, the rest of the
world as generously supplying the muscles. No small number of
these whaling seamen belong to the Azores, where the outward bound
Nantucket whalers frequently touch to augment their crews from the
hardy peasants of those rocky shores. In like manner, the
Greenland whalers sailing out of Hull or London, put in at the
Shetland Islands, to receive the full complement of their crew.
Upon the passage homewards, they drop them there again. How it
is, there is no telling, but Islanders seem to make the best
whalemen. They were nearly all Islanders in the Pequod,
Isolatoes too, I call such, not acknowledging the common
continent of men, but each Isolato living on a separate
continent of his own. Yet now, federated along one keel, what a
set these Isolatoes were! An Anacharsis Clootz deputation from
all the
isles of the sea, and all the ends of the earth, accompanying Old
Ahab in the pequod to lay the world's grievances before that bar
from which not very many of them ever come back. Black Little Pip
- he never did - oh, no! he went before. Poor Alabama boy!
On the grim Pequod's forecastle, ye shall ere long see him,
beating his tambourine; prelusive of the eternal time, when sent
for, to the great quarter-deck on high, he was bid strike in with
angels, and beat his tambourine in glory; called a coward here,
hailed a hero there!
*x*
*x moby_028.html/Chapter xxviii - AHAB*
For several days after leaving Nantucket,
nothing above hatches was seen of Captain Ahab. The mates
regularly relieved each other at the watches, and for aught that
could be seen to the contrary, they seemed to be the only
commanders of the ship; only they sometimes issued from the cabin
with orders so sudden and peremptory, that after all it was plain
they but commanded vicariously. Yes, their supreme lord and
dictator was there, though hitherto unseen by any eyes not
permitted to penetrate into the now sacred retreat of the
cabin.
Every time I ascended to the deck from my
watches below, I instantly gazed aft to mark if any strange face
were visible; for my first vague disquietude touching the unknown
captain, now in the seclusion of the sea, became almost a
perturbation. This was strangely heightened at times by the
ragged Elijah's diabolical incoherences uninvitedly recurring to
me, with a subtle energy I could not have before conceived of. But
poorly could I withstand them, much as in other moods I was almost
ready to smile at the solemn whimsicalities of that outlandish
prophet of the wharves. But whatever it was of apprehensiveness
or uneasiness - to call it so - which I felt, yet whenever I
came to look about me in the ship, it seemed against all warrantry
to
cherish such emotions. For though the harpooneers, with the great
body of the crew, were a far more barbaric, heathenish, and motley
set than any of the tame merchant-ship companies which my previous
experiences had made me acquainted with, still I ascribed this
- and rightly ascribed it - to the fierce uniqueness of the
very nature of that wild Scandinavian vocation in which I had so
abandonedly embarked. But it was especially the aspect of the
three chief officers of the ship, the mates, which was most
forcibly calculated to allay these colorless misgivings, and
induce confidence and cheerfulness in every presentment of the
voyage. Three better, more likely sea-officers and men, each in
his own different way, could not readily be found, and they were
every one of them Americans; a Nantucketer, a Vineyarder, a Cape
man. Now, it being Christmas when the ship shot from out her
harbor, for a space we had biting Polar weather, though all the
time running away from it to the southward; and by every degree
and minute of latitude which we sailed, gradually leaving that
merciless winter, and all its intolerable weather behind us. It
was one of those less lowering, but still grey and gloomy enough
mornings of the transition, when with a fair wind the ship was
rushing through the water with a vindictive sort of leaping and
melancholy rapidity, that as I mounted to the deck at the call of
the forenoon watch, so soon as I levelled my glance towards the
taffrail, foreboding shivers ran over me. Reality outran
apprehension; Captain Ahab stood upon his quarter-deck.
There seemed no sign of common bodily illness about him, nor
of the recovery from any. He looked like a man cut away from the
stake, when the fire has overrunningly wasted all the limbs
without consuming them, or taking away one particle from their
compacted aged robustness. His whole high, broad form, seemed
made of solid bronze, and shaped in an unalterable mould, like
Cellini's cast Perseus. Threading its way out from among his grey
hairs, and continuing right down one side of his tawny scorched
face and neck, till it disappeared in his clothing, you saw a
slender rod-like mark, lividly whitish. It resembled that
perpendicular seam sometimes made in the straight, lofty trunk of
a great tree, when the upper lightning
tearingly darts down it, and without wrenching a single twig, peels
and grooves out the bark from top to bottom, ere running off into
the soil, leaving the tree still greenly alive, but branded.
Whether that mark was born with him, or whether it was the scar
left by some desperate wound, no one could certainly say. By some
tacit consent, throughout the voyage little or no allusion was
made to it, especially by the mates. But once Tashtego's senior,
an old Gay-Head Indian among the crew, superstitiously asserted
that not till he was full forty years old did Ahab become that way
branded, and then it came upon him, not in the fury of any mortal
fray, but in an elemental strife at sea. Yet, this wild hint
seemed inferentially negatived, by what a grey Manxman insinuated,
an old sepulchral man, who, having never before sailed out of
Nantucket, had never ere this laid eye upon wild Ahab.
Nevertheless, the old sea-traditions, the immemorial credulities,
popularly invested this old Manxman with preternatural powers of
discernment. So that no white sailor seriously contradicted him
when he said that if ever Captain Ahab should be tranquilly laid
out - which might hardly come to pass, so he muttered - then,
whoever should do that last office for the dead, would find a
birth-mark on him from crown to sole.
So powerfully
did the whole grim aspect of Ahab affect me, and the livid brand
which streaked it, that for the first few moments I hardly noted
that not a little of this overbearing grimness was owing to the
barbaric white leg upon which he partly stood. It had previously
come to me that this ivory leg had at sea been fashioned from the
polished bone of the sperm whale's jaw. "Aye, he was dismasted
off Japan," said the old Gay-Head Indian once; "but like his
dismasted craft, he shipped another mast without coming home for
it. He has a quiver of 'em."
I was struck with
the singular posture he maintained. Upon each side of the Pequod's
quarter deck, and pretty close to the mizen shrouds, there was an
auger hole, bored about half an inch or so, into the plank. His
bone leg steadied in that hole; one arm elevated, and holding by
a shroud; Captain Ahab stood erect, looking straight out beyond
the ship's ever-pitching prow. There was an infinity of firmest
fortitude, a determinate unsurrenderable
wilfulness, in the fixed and fearless, forward dedication of that
glance. Not a word he spoke; nor did his officers say aught to
him; though by all their minutest gestures and expressions, they
plainly showed the uneasy, if not painful, consciousness of being
under a troubled master-eye. And not only that, but moody
stricken Ahab stood before them with a crucifixion in his face; in
all the nameless regal overbearing dignity of some mighty
woe.
Ere long, from his first visit in the air, he
withdrew into his cabin. But after that morning, he was every day
visible to the crew; either standing in his pivot-hole, or seated
upon an ivory stool he had; or heavily walking the deck. As the
sky grew less gloomy; indeed, began to grow a little genial, he
became still less and less a recluse; as if, when the ship had
sailed from home, nothing but the dead wintry bleakness of the sea
had then kept him so secluded. And, by and by, it came to pass,
that he was almost continually in the air; but, as yet, for all
that he said, or perceptibly did, on the at last sunny deck, he
seemed as unnecessary there as another mast. But the Pequod was
only making a passage now; not regularly cruising; nearly all
whaling preparatives needing supervision the mates were fully
competent to, so that there was little or nothing, out of himself,
to employ or excite Ahab, now; and thus chase away, for that one
interval, the clouds that layer upon layer were piled upon his
brow, as ever all clouds choose the loftiest peaks to pile
themselves upon.
Nevertheless, ere long, the warm,
warbling persuasiveness of the pleasant, holiday weather we came
to, seemed gradually to charm him from his mood. For, as when the
red-cheeked, dancing girls, April and May, trip home to the
wintry, misanthropic woods; even the barest, ruggedest, most
thunder-cloven old oak will at least send forth some few green
sprouts, to welcome such glad-hearted visitants; so Ahab did, in
the end, a little respond to the playful allurings of that girlish
air. More than once did he put forth the faint blossom of a look,
which, in any other man, would have soon flowered out in a
smile.
*x*
*x moby_029.html/Chapter xxix - ENTER AHAB; TO HIM, STUBB*
Some days elapsed, and ice and icebergs all astern,
the Pequod now went rolling through the bright Quito spring,
which, at sea, almost perpetually reigns on the threshold of the
eternal August of the Tropic. The warmly cool, clear, ringing,
perfumed, overflowing, redundant days, were as crystal goblets of
Persian sherbet, heaped up - flaked up, with rose-water snow.
The starred and stately nights seemed haughty dames in jewelled
velvets, nursing at home in lonely pride, the memory of their
absent conquering Earls, the golden helmeted suns! For sleeping
man, 'twas hard to choose between such winsome days and such
seducing nights. But all the witcheries of that unwaning weather
did not merely lend new spells and potencies to the outward world.
Inward they turned upon the soul, especially when the still mild
hours of eve came on; then, memory shot her crystals as the clear
ice most forms of noiseless twilights. And all these subtle
agencies, more and more they wrought on Ahab's texture.
Old age is always wakeful; as if, the longer linked with
life, the less man has to do with aught that looks like death.
among sea-commanders, the old greybeards will oftenest leave their
berths to visit the night-cloaked deck. It was so with Ahab; only
that now, of late, he seemed so much to live in the open air, that
truly speaking, his visits were more to the cabin, than from, the
cabin to the planks. "It feels like going down into one's
tomb," - he would mutter to himself, - "for an old
captain like me to be descending this narrow scuttle, to go to my
grave-dug berth."
So, almost every twenty-four
hours, when the watches of the night were set, and the band on
deck sentinelled the slumbers of the band below; and when if a rope
was to be hauled upon the forecastle, the sailors flung it not
rudely down, as by day,
but with some cautiousness dropt it to its place, for fear of
disturbing their slumbering shipmates; when this sort of steady
quietude would begin to prevail, habitually, the silent steersman
would watch the cabin-scuttle; and ere long the old man would
emerge, griping at the iron banister, to help his crippled way.
Some considerating touch of humanity was in him; for at times like
these, he usually abstained from patrolling the quarter-deck;
because to his wearied mates, seeking repose within six inches of
his ivory heel, such would have been the reverberating crack and
din of that bony step, that their dreams would have been of the
crunching teeth of sharks. But once, the mood was on him too deep
for common regardings; and as with heavy, lumber-like pace he was
measuring the ship from taffrail to mainmast, Stubb, the odd
second mate, came up from below, and with a certain unassured,
deprecating humorousness, hinted that if Captain Ahab was pleased
to walk the planks, then, no one could say nay; but there might be
some way of muffling the noise; hinting something indistinctly and
hesitatingly about a globe of tow, and the insertion into it, of
the ivory heel. Ah! Stubb, thou did'st not know Ahab
then.
"Am I a cannon-ball, Stubb," said Ahab,
"that thou wouldst wad me that fashion? But go thy ways; I had
forgot. Below to thy nightly grave; where such as ye sleep
between shrouds, to use ye to the filling one at last. - Down,
dog, and kennel!"
Starting at the unforeseen
concluding exclamation of the so suddenly scornful old man, Stubb
was speechless a moment; then said excitedly, "I am not used to
be spoken to that way, sir; I do but less than half like it,
sir."
"Avast!" gritted Ahab between his set
teeth, and violently moving away, as if to avoid some passionate
temptation.
"No, sir; not yet," said Stubb,
emboldened, "I will not tamely be called a dog, sir."
"Then be called ten times a donkey, and a mule, and an
ass, and begone, or I'll clear the world of thee!"
As he said this, Ahab advanced upon him with such
overbearing terrors in his aspect, that Stubb involuntarily
retreated.
"I was never served so before without
giving a hard blow for it," muttered Stubb, as he found himself
descending the cabin-scuttle.
"It's very queer. Stop, Stubb; somehow, now, I don't well know
whether to go back and strike him, or - what's that? - down
here on my knees and pray for him? Yes, that was the thought
coming up in me; but it would be the first time I ever did
pray. It's queer; very queer; and he's queer too; aye, take him
fore and aft, he's about the queerest old man Stubb ever sailed
with. How he flashed at me! - his eyes like powder-pans! is he
mad? Anyway there's something on his mind, as sure as there must
be something on a deck when it cracks. He aint in his bed now,
either, more than three hours out of the twenty-four; and he don't
sleep then. Didn't that Dough-Boy, the steward, tell me that of
a morning he always finds the old man's hammock clothes all
rumpled and tumbled, and the sheets down at the foot, and the
coverlid almost tied into knots, and the pillow a sort of frightful
hot, as though a baked brick had been on it? A hot old man! I
guess he's got what some folks ashore call a conscience; it's a
kind of Tic-Dolly-row they say - worse nor a toothache. Well,
well; I don't know what it is, but the Lord keep me from catching
it. He's full of riddles; I wonder what he goes into the after
hold for, every night, as Dough-Boy tells me he suspects; what's
that for, I should like to know? Who's made appointments with him
in the hold? Ain't that queer, now? But there's no telling, it's
the old game - Here goes for a snooze. Damn me, it's worth a
fellow's while to be born into the world, if only to fall right
asleep. And now that I think of it, that's about the first thing
babies do, and that's a sort of queer, too. Damn me, but all
things are queer, come to think of 'em. But that's against my
principles. Think not, is my eleventh commandment; and sleep when
you can, is my twelfth - So here goes again. But how's that?
didn't he call me a dog? blazes! he called me ten times a donkey,
and piled a lot of jackasses on top of that! He might as well
have kicked me, and done with it. Maybe he did kick me, and I
didn't observe it, I was so taken all aback with his brow,
somehow. It flashed like a bleached bone. What the devil's the
matter with me? I don't stand right on my legs. Coming afoul of
that old man has a sort of turned me wrong side out. By the Lord,
I must have been dreaming, though - How? how? how? - but the
only way's
to stash it; so here goes to hammock again; and in the morning,
I'll see how this plaguey juggling thinks over by day-
light."
*x*
*x moby_030.html/Chapter xxx - THE PIPE*
When Stubb had departed, Ahab stood for a while
leaning over the bulwarks; and then, as had been usual with him of
late, calling a sailor of the watch, he sent him below for his
ivory stool, and also his pipe. Lighting the pipe at the binnacle
lamp and planting the stool on the weather side of the deck, he
sat and smoked.
In old Norse times, the thrones of
the sea-loving Danish kings were fabricated, saith tradition, of
the tusks of the Narwhale. How could one look at Ahab then, seated
on that tripod of bones, without bethinking him of the royalty it
symbolized? For a Khan of the plank, and a king of the sea, and
a great lord of Leviathans was Ahab.
Some moments
passed, during which the thick vapor came from his mouth in quick
and constant puffs, which blew back again into his face. "How
now," he soliloquized at last, withdrawing the tube, "this
smoking no longer soothes. Oh, my pipe! hard must it go with me
if thy charm be gone! Here have I been unconsciously toiling, not
pleasuring, - aye, and ignorantly smoking to windward all the
while; to windward, and with such nervous whiffs, as if, like the
dying whale, my final jets were the strongest and fullest of
trouble. What business have I with this pipe? This thing that is
meant for sereneness, to send up mild white vapors among mild white
hairs, not among torn iron-grey locks like mine. I'll smoke no
more - "
He tossed the still lighted pipe into
the sea. The fire hissed in the waves; the same instant the ship
shot by the bubble the sinking pipe made. With slouched hat, Ahab
lurchingly paced the planks.
*x*
*x moby_031.html/Chapter xxxi - QUEEN MAB*
Next morning Stubb accosted Flask.
"Such a queer dream, King-Post, I never had. You know
the old man's ivory leg, well I dreamed he kicked me with it; and
when I tried to kick back, upon my soul, my little man, I kicked
my leg right off! And then, presto! Ahab seemed a pyramid, and
I, like a blazing fool, kept kicking at it. But what was still
more curious, Flask - you know how curious all dreams are -
through all this rage that I was in, I somehow seemed to be
thinking to myself, that after all, it was not much of an insult,
that kick from Ahab. "Why," thinks I,"what's the row?
It's not a real leg, only a false leg." And there's a mighty
difference between a living thump and a dead thump. That's what
makes a blow from the hand, Flask, fifty times more savage to bear
than a blow from a cane. The living member - that makes the
living insult, my little man. And thinks I to myself all the
while, mind, while I was stubbing my silly toes against that
cursed pyramid - so confoundedly contradictory was it all, all
the while, I say, I was thinking to myself, "what's his leg
now, but a cane - a whalebone cane. Yes," thinks I,"it
was only a playful cudgelling - in fact, only a whaleboning that
he gave me - not a base kick. Besides," thinks I,"look
at it once; why, the end of it - the foot part - what a small
sort of end it is; whereas, if a broad footed farmer kicked me,
there's a devilish broad insult. But this insult is
whittled down to a point only." But now comes the greatest
joke of the dream, Flask. While I was battering away at the
pyramid, a sort of badger-haired old merman, with a hump on his
back, takes me by the shoulders, and slews me round. "What
are you 'bout?" says he. Slid! man, but I was frightened.
Such a phiz! But, somehow, next moment I was over the fright.
"What am I about?" says I at last. "And what business
is that of yours, I should like to know, Mr. Humpback? Do you
want a
kick?" By the lord, Flask, I had no sooner said that, than he
turned round his stern to me, bent over, and dragging up a lot of
seaweed he had for a clout - what do you think, I saw? - why
thunder alive, man, his stern was stuck full of marlinspikes, with
the points out. Says I, on second thoughts, oqq.I guess I won't
kick you, old fellow." "Wise Stubb," said he,"wise
Stubb;" and kept muttering it all the time, a sort of eating
of his own gums like a chimney hag. seeing he wasn't going to
stop saying over his "wise Stubb, wise Stubb," I thought
I might as well fall to kicking the pyramid again. But I had only
just lifted my foot for it, when he roared out, "Stop that
kicking!" "Halloa," says I, "what's the matter
now, old fellow?" "Look ye here," says he;"let's
argue the insult. Captain Ahab kicked ye, didn't he?"
"Yes, he did," says I - "right here it
was." "Very good," says he - "he used his ivory
leg, didn't he?" "Yes, he did," says I. "Well
then," says he, "wise Stubb, what have you to complain of?
Didn't he kick with right good will? it wasn't a common pitch
pine leg he kicked with, was it? No, you were kicked by a great
man, and with a beautiful ivory leg, Stubb. It's an honor; I
consider it an honor. Listen, wise Stubb. In old England the
greatest lords think it great glory to be slapped by a queen, and
made garter-knights of; but, be your boast, Stubb, that ye
were kicked by old Ahab, and made a wise man of. Remember what I
say; be kicked by him; account his kicks honors; and on no
account kick back; for you can't help yourself, wise Stubb. Don't
you see that pyramid?" With that, he all of a sudden seemed
somehow, in some queer fashion, to swim off into the air. I
snored; rolled over; and there I was in my hammock! Now, what do
you think of that dream, Flask?"
"I don't know;
it seems a sort of foolish to me, tho'."
"May
be, may be. But it's made a wise man of me, Flask. D'ye see Ahab
standing there, sideways looking over the stern? Well, the best
thing you can do, Flask, is to let that old man alone; never speak
to him, whatever he says. Halloa! what's that he shouts?
Hark!"
"Mast-head, there! Look sharp, all of
ye! There are whales hereabouts! If ye see a white one, split
your lungs for him!"
"What d'ye think of that
now, Flask? ain't there a small drop
of something queer about that, eh? a white whale - did ye mark
that, man? Look ye - there's something special in the wind.
Stand by for it, Flask. Ahab has that that's bloody on his mind.
But, mum; he comes this way."
*x*
*x moby_032.html/Chapter xxxii - CETOLOGY*
Already we are boldly launched upon the deep; but
soon we shall be lost in its unshored, harborless immensities. Ere
that come to pass; ere the Pequod's weedy hull rolls side by side
with the barnacled hulls of the Leviathan; at the outset it is but
well to attend to a matter almost indispensable to a thorough
appreciative understanding of the more special leviathanic
revelations and allusions of all sorts which are to follow.
It is some systematized exhibition of the whale in his broad
genera, that I would now fain put before you. Yet is it no easy
task. The classification of the constituents of a chaos, nothing
less is here essayed. Listen to what the best and latest
authorities have laid down.
"No branch of Zoology
is so much involved as that which is entitled Cetology," says
Captain Scoresby, A. D. 1820.
"It is not my
intention, were it in my power, to enter into the inquiry as to
the true method of dividing the cetacea into groups and families.
* * * Utter confusion exists among the historians of this
animal" (Sperm Whale), says Surgeon Beale, A. D. 1839.
"Unfitness to pursue our research in the unfathomable
waters." "Impenetrable veil covering our knowledge of the
cetacea." "A field strewn with thorns." "All these
incomplete indications but serve to torture us
naturalists."
Thus speak of the whale, the great
Cuvier, and John Hunter, and Lesson, those lights of zoology and
anatomy. Nevertheless, though of real knowledge there be little,
yet of books there are
a plenty; and so in some small degree, with cetology, or the
science of whales. many are the men, small and great, old and
new, landsmen and seamen, who have at large or in little, written
of the whale. Run over a few: - The Authors of the Bible;
Aristotle; Pliny; Aldrovandi; Sir Thomas Browne; Gesner; Ray;
Linnaeus; Rondeletius; Willoughby; Green; Artedi; Sibbald;
Brisson; Marten; Lacepede; Bonneterre; Desmarest; Baron Cuvier;
Frederick Cuvier; John Hunter; Owen; Scoresby; Beale; Bennett; J.
Ross Browne; the Author of Miriam Coffin; Olmstead; and the Rev.
T. Cheever. But to what ultimate generalizing purpose all these
have written, the above cited extracts will show.
Of
the names in this list of whale authors, only those following Owen
ever saw living whales; and but one of them was a real professional
harpooneer and whaleman. I mean Captain Scoresby. On the separate
subject of the Greenland or Right-Whale, he is the best existing
authority. But Scoresby knew nothing and says nothing of the
great Sperm Whale, compared with which the Greenland Whale is
almost unworthy mentioning. And here be it said, that the
Greenland Whale is an usurper upon the throne of the seas. He is
not even by any means the largest of the whales. Yet, owing to
the long priority of his claims, and the profound ignorance which,
till some seventy years back, invested the then fabulous and
utterly unknown Sperm-Whale, and which ignorance to this present
day still reigns in all but some few scientific retreats and
whale-ports; this usurpation has been every way complete.
Reference to nearly all the leviathanic allusions in the great
poets of past days, will satisfy you that the Greenland Whale,
without one rival, was to them the monarch of the seas. But the
time has at last come for a new proclamation. This is Charing
Cross; hear ye! good people all, - the Greenland Whale is
deposed, - the great Sperm Whale now reigneth!
There are only two books in being which at all pretend to
put the living Sperm Whale before you, and at the same time, in
the remotest degree succeed in the attempt. Those books are
Beale's and Bennett's; both in their time surgeons to English
South-Sea whale-ships, and both exact and reliable men. The
original matter touching the Sperm Whale to be found in their
volumes is necessarily small; but so far as it goes, it is of
excellent quality, though mostly confined to scientific
description. As yet, however, the Sperm Whale, scientific or
poetic, lives not complete in any literature. Far above all other
hunted whales, his is an unwritten life.
Now the
various species of whales need some sort of popular comprehensive
classification, if only an easy outline one for the present,
hereafter to be filled in all its departments by subsequent
laborers. As no better man advances to take this matter in hand,
I hereupon offer my own poor endeavors. I promise nothing
complete; because any human thing supposed to be complete, must
for that very reason infallibly be faulty. I shall not pretend to
a minute anatomical description of the various species, or - in
this place at least - to much of any description. My object
here is simply to project the draught of a systematization of
cetology. I am the architect, not the builder.
But
it is a ponderous task; no ordinary letter-sorter in the Post-
office is equal to it. To grope down into the bottom of the sea
after them; to have one's hands among the unspeakable foundations,
ribs, and very pelvis of the world; this is a fearful thing. What
am I that I should essay to hook the nose of this Leviathan! The
awful tauntings in Job might well appal me. "Will he (the
Leviathan) make a covenant with thee? Behold the hope of him is
vain!" But I have swam through libraries and sailed through
oceans; I have had to do with whales with these visible hands; I
am in earnest; and I will try. There are some preliminaries to
settle.
First: The uncertain, unsettled condition of
this science of Cetology is in the very vestibule attested by the
fact, that in some quarters it still remains a moot point whether
a whale be a fish. In his System of Nature, A. D. 1776,
Linnaeus declares, "I hereby separate the whales
from the fish." But of my own knowledge, I know that down to
the year 1850, sharks and shad, alewives and herring, against
Linnaeus's express edict, were still found dividing the possession
of the same seas with the Leviathan.
The grounds
upon which Linnaeus would fain have banished
the whales from the waters, he states as follows: "On account of
their warm bilocular heart, their lungs, their movable eyelids,
their hollow ears, penem intrantem feminam mammis lactantem,"
and finally, "ex lege naturae jure meritoque." I submitted
all this to my friends Simeon Macey and Charley Coffin, of
Nantucket, both messmates of mine in a certain voyage, and they
united in the opinion that the reasons set forth were altogether
insufficient. Charley profanely hinted they were humbug.
Be it known that, waiving all argument, I take the good old
fashioned ground that the whale is a fish, and call upon holy
Jonah to back me. This fundamental thing settled, the next point
is, in what internal respect does the whale differ from other fish.
Above, Linnaeus has given you those items. But in brief, they are
these: lungs and warm blood; whereas, all other fish are lungless
and cold blooded.
Next: how shall we define the
whale, by his obvious externals, so as conspicuously to label him
for all time to come? To be short, then, a whale is a spouting
fish with a horizontal tail. There you have him. However
contracted, that definition is the result of expanded meditation.
A walrus spouts much like a whale, but the walrus is not a fish,
because he is amphibious. but the last term of the definition is
still more cogent, as coupled with the first. Almost any one must
have noticed that all the fish familiar to landsmen have not a
flat, but a vertical, or up-and-down tail. Whereas, among spouting
fish the tail, though it may be similarly shaped, invariably
assumes a horizontal position.
By the above
definition of what a whale is, I do by no means exclude from the
leviathanic brotherhood any sea creature hitherto identified with
the whale by the best informed Nantucketers; nor, on the other
hand, link with it any fish hitherto authoritatively regarded as
alien. Hence, all the smaller, spouting,
and horizontal tailed fish must be included in this ground-plan of
Cetology. Now, then, come the grand divisions of the entire whale
host.
First: According to magnitude I divide the
whales into three primary BOOKS (subdivisible into
Chapters), and these shall comprehend them all, both small
and large.
I, The FOLIO WHALE; II. the OCTAVO WHALE;
III. the DUODECIMO WHALE.
As the type of the FOLIO
I present the Sperm Whale; of the OCTAVO, the Grampus; of the
DUODECIMO, the Porpoise.
FOLIOS. Among these I here
include the following chapters: - I. The Sperm Whale; II.
the Right Whale; III. the Fin Back Whale; IV. the
Hump-backed Whale; V. the Razor Back Whale; VI. the
Sulphur Bottom Whale.
BOOK I. (Folio),
Chapter I. (Sperm Whale). - This whale, among the
English of old vaguely known as the Trumpa Whale, and the Physeter
Whale, and the Anvil Headed Whale, is the present Cachalot of the
French, and the Pottsfich of the Germans, and the Macrocephalus of
the Long Words. He is, without doubt, the largest inhabitant of
the globe; the most formidable of all whales to encounter; the
most majestic in aspect; and lastly, by far the most valuable in
commerce; he being the only creature from which that valuable
substance, spermaceti, is obtained. All his peculiarities will,
in many other places, be enlarged upon. It is chiefly with his
name that I now have to do. Philologically considered, it is
absurd. Some centuries ago, when the Sperm Whale was almost wholly
unknown in his own proper individuality, and when his oil was only
accidentally obtained from the stranded fish; in those days
spermaceti, it would seem, was popularly supposed to be derived
from a creature identical with the one then known in England as
the Greenland or Right Whale. It was the idea also, that this
same spermaceti was that quickening humor of the Greenland Whale
which the first syllable of the word literally expresses. In
those times, also, spermaceti was exceedingly scarce, not being
used for light, but only as an ointment and medicament. It was
only to be had from the druggists as you nowadays buy an ounce of
rhubarb. When, as I opine, in the course of time, the true nature
of spermaceti became
known, its original name was still retained by the dealers; no
doubt to enhance its value by a notion so strangely significant of
its scarcity. And so the appellation must at last have come to be
bestowed upon the whale from which this spermaceti was really
derived.
BOOK I. (Folio), Chapter II.
(Right Whale). - In one respect this is the most venerable
of the Leviathans, being the one first regularly hunted by man. It
yields the article commonly known as whalebone or baleen; and the
oil specially known as "whale oil", an inferior article in
commerce. Among the fishermen, he is indiscriminately designated
by all the following titles: The Whale; the Greenland Whale; the
Black Whale; the Great Whale; the True Whale; the Right Whale.
there is a deal of obscurity concerning the identity of the species
thus multitudinously baptized. What then is the whale, which I
include in the second species of my Folios? It is the Great
Mysticetus of the English naturalists; the Greenland Whale of the
English Whalemen; the Baliene Ordinaire of the French whalemen;
the Growlands Walfish of the Swedes. It is the whale which for
more than two centuries past has been hunted by the Dutch and
English in the Arctic seas; it is the whale which the American
fishermen have long pursued in the Indian ocean, on the Brazil
Banks, on the Nor' West Coast, and various other parts of the
world, designated by them Right Whale Cruising Grounds.
Some pretend to see a difference between the Greenland Whale
of the English and the Right Whale of the Americans. But they
precisely agree in all their grand features; nor has there yet
been presented a single determinate fact upon which to ground a
radical distinction. It is by endless subdivisions based upon the
most inconclusive differences, that some departments of natural
history become so repellingly intricate. The Right Whale will be
elsewhere treated of at some length, with reference to elucidating
the Sperm Whale.
BOOK I (Folio),
Chapter III (Fin-Back). - Under this head I
reckon a monster which, by the various names of Fin-Back, Tall-
Spout, and Long-John, has been seen almost in every sea and is
commonly the whale whose distant jet is so often descried by
passengers crossing the Atlantic, in the New York
packet-tracks. In the length he attains, and in his baleen, the
Fin-back resembles the Right Whale, but is of a less portly girth,
and a lighter color, approaching to olive. His great lips present
a cable-like aspect, formed by the intertwisting, slanting folds
of large wrinkles. His grand distinguishing feature, the fin,
from which he derives his name, is often a conspicuous object.
this fin is some three or four feet long, growing vertically from
the hinder part of the back, of an angular shape, and with a very
sharp pointed end. Even if not the slightest other part of the
creature be visible, this isolated fin will, at times, be seen
plainly projecting from the surface. When the sea is moderately
calm, and slightly marked with spherical ripples, and this gnomon-
like fin stands up and casts shadows upon the wrinkled surface, it
may well be supposed that the watery circle surrounding it
somewhat resembles a dial, with its style and wavy hour-lines
graved on it. On that Ahaz-dial the shadow often goes back. The
Fin-Back is not gregarious. He seems a whale-hater, as some men
are man-haters. Very shy; always going solitary; unexpectedly
rising to the surface in the remotest and most sullen waters; his
straight and single lofty jet rising like a tall misanthropic
spear upon a barren plain; gifted with such wondrous power and
velocity in swimming, as to defy all present pursuit from man;
this Leviathan seems the banished and unconquerable Cain of his
race, bearing for his mark that style upon his back. From having
the baleen in his mouth, the Fin-Back is sometimes included with
the Right Whale, among a theoretic species denominated
Whalebone whales, that is, whales with baleen. Of these so
called Whalebone whales, there would seem to be several varieties,
most of which, however, are little known. Broad-nosed whales and
beaked whales; pike-headed whales; bunched whales; under-jawed
whales and rostrated whales, are the fishermen's names for a few
sorts.
In connexion with this appellative of
"Whalebone whales", it is of great importance to mention,
that however such a nomenclature may be convenient in facilitating
allusions to some kind of whales, yet it is in vain to attempt a
clear classification of the Leviathan, founded upon either his
baleen, or hump, or fin, or teeth; notwithstanding that those
marked parts or features very
obviously seem better adapted to afford the basis for a regular
system of Cetology than any other detached bodily distinctions,
which the whale, in his kinds, presents. How then? The baleen,
hump, back-fin, and teeth; these are things whose peculiarities
are indiscriminately dispersed among all sorts of whales, without
any regard to what may be the nature of their structure in other
and more essential particulars. Thus, the Sperm Whale and the
Humpbacked Whale, each has a hump; but there the similitude ceases.
Then, this same Humpbacked Whale and the Greenland Whale, each of
these has baleen; but there again the similitude ceases. And it
is just the same with the other parts above mentioned. In various
sorts of whales, they form such irregular combinations; or, in the
case of any one of them detached, such an irregular isolation; as
utterly to defy all general methodization formed upon such a
basis. On this rock every one of the whale-naturalists has
split.
But it may possibly be conceived that, in the
internal parts of the whale, in his anatomy - there, at least,
we shall be able to hit the right classification. Nay; what thing,
for example, is there in the Greenland Whale's anatomy more
striking than his baleen? Yet we have seen that by his baleen it
is impossible correctly to classify the Greenland Whale. And if
you descend into the bowels of the various Leviathans, why there
you will not find distinctions a fiftieth part as available to the
systematizer as those external ones already enumerated. What then
remains? nothing but to take hold of the whales bodily, in their
entire liberal volume, and boldly sort them that way. And this is
the Bibliographical system here adopted; and it is the only one
that can possibly succeed, for it alone is practicable. To
proceed.
BOOK I (Folio), Chapter IV
(Hump Back). - this whale is often seen on the northern
American coast. He has been frequently captured there, and towed
into harbor. He has a great pack on him like a peddler; or you
might call him the Elephant and Castle Whale. At any rate, the
popular name for him does not sufficiently distinguish him, since
the Sperm Whale also has a hump, though a smaller one. His oil is
not very valuable. He has baleen. He is the most gamesome and
light-hearted of all
the whales, making more gay foam and white water generally than any
other of them.
BOOK I (Folio),
Chapter V (Razor Back). - Of this whale little is
known but his name. I have seen him at a distance off Cape Horn.
Of a retiring nature, he eludes both hunters and philosophers.
Though no coward, he has never yet shown any part of him but his
back, which rises in a long sharp ridge. Let him go. I know
little more of him, nor does anybody else.
BOOK I
(Folio), Chapter VI (Sulphur Bottom). -
Another retiring gentleman, with a brimstone belly, doubtless got
by scraping along the Tartarian tiles in some of his profounder
divings. He is seldom seen; at least I have never seen him except
in the remoter southern seas, and then always at too great a
distance to study his countenance. He is never chased; he would
run away with rope-walks of line. Prodigies are told of him.
Adieu, Sulphur Bottom! I can say nothing more that is true of ye,
nor can the oldest Nantucketer.
Thus ends BOOK I
(Folio), and now begins BOOK II (Octavo).
OCTAVOES. These embrace the whales of middling magnitude,
among which at present may be numbered: - I, the Grampus;
II, the Black Fish; III, the Narwhale; IV, the
Thrasher; V, the Killer.
BOOK II
(Octavo), Chapter I (Grampus). - Though
this fish, whose loud sonorous breathing, or rather blowing, has
furnished a proverb to landsmen, is so well known a denizen of the
deep, yet is he not popularly classed among whales. But possessing
all the grand distinctive features of the Leviathan, most
naturalists have recognised him for one. He is of moderate octavo
size, varying from fifteen to twenty-five feet in length, and of
corresponding dimensions round the waist. He swims in herds; he
is never regularly hunted, though his oil is considerable
in quantity, and pretty good for light. By some fishermen his
approach is regarded as premonitory of the advance of the great
Sperm Whale.
BOOK II (Octavo),
Chapter II (Black Fish). - I give the popular
fishermen's names for all these fish, for generally they are the
best. Where any name happens to be vague or inexpressive, I shall
say so, and suggest another. I do so now, touching the Black
Fish, so called, because blackness is the rule among almost all
whales. So, call him the Hyena Whale, if you please. His voracity
is well known, and from the circumstance that the inner angles of
his lips are curved upwards, he carries an everlasting
Mephistophelean grin on his face. This whale averages some
sixteen or eighteen feet in length. He is found in almost all
latitudes. He has a peculiar way of showing his dorsal hooked fin
in swimming, which looks something like a Roman nose. When not
more profitably employed, the Sperm Whale hunters sometimes capture
the Hyena Whale, to keep up the supply of cheap oil for domestic
employment - as some frugal housekeepers, in the absence of
company, and quite alone by themselves, burn unsavory tallow
instead of odorous wax. Though their blubber is very thin, some
of these whales will yield you upwards of thirty gallons of
oil.
BOOK II (Octavo), Chapter III
(Narwhale), that is, Nostril Whale. - Another
instance of a curiously named whale, so named I suppose from his
peculiar horn being originally mistaken for a peaked nose. The
creature is some sixteen feet in length, while its horn averages
five feet, though some exceed ten, and even attain to fifteen
feet. Strictly speaking, this horn is but a lengthened tusk,
growing out from the jaw in a line a little depressed from the
horizontal. But it is only found on the sinister side, which has
an ill effect, giving its owner something analogous to the aspect
of a clumsy left-handed man. What precise purpose this ivory horn
or lance answers, it would be hard to say. It does not seemed to
be used like the blade of the sword-fish and bill-fish; though
some sailors tell me that the Narwhale employs it for a rake in
turning over the bottom of the sea for food. Charley Coffin said
it was used for an ice-piercer; for the Narwhale, rising to the
surface of the Polar Sea,
and finding it sheeted with ice, thrusts his horn up, and so breaks
through. But you cannot prove either of these surmises to be
correct. My own opinion is, that however this one-sided horn may
really be used by the Narwhale - however that may be - it
would certainly be very convenient to him for a folder in reading
pamphlets. The Narwhale I have heard called the Tusked Whale, the
Horned Whale, and the Unicorn Whale. He is certainly a curious
example of the Unicornism to be found in almost every kingdom of
animated nature. From certain cloistered old authors I have
gathered that this same sea-unicorn's horn was in ancient days
regarded as the great antidote against poison, and as such,
preparations of it brought immense prices. It was also distilled
to a volatile salts for fainting ladies, the same way that the
horns of the male deer are manufactured into hartshorn. Originally
it was in itself accounted an object of great curiosity. Black
Letter tells me that Sir Martin Frobisher on his return from that
voyage, when Queen Bess did gallantly wave her jewelled hand to
him from a window of Greenwich Palace, as his bold ship sailed
down the Thames; when Sir Martin returned from that voyage, saith
Black Letter, on bended knees he presented to her highness a
prodigious long horn of the Narwhale, which for a long period after
hung in the castle at Windsor. An Irish author avers that the
Earl of Leicester, on bended knees, did likewise present to her
highness another horn, pertaining to a land beast of the unicorn
nature.
The Narwhale has a very picturesque,
leopard-like look, being of a milk-white ground color, dotted with
round and oblong spots of black. His oil is very superior, clear
and fine; but there is little of it, and he is seldom hunted. He
is mostly found in the circumpolar seas.
BOOK II
(Octavo), Chapter IV (Killer). - Of this
whale little is precisely known to the Nantucketer, and nothing at
all to the professed naturalist. From what I have seen of him at
a distance, I should say that he was about the bigness of a
grampus. He is very savage - a sort of Feegee fish. He
sometimes takes the great Folio Whales by the lip, and hangs there
like a leech, till the mighty brute is worried to death. The
Killer is never hunted. I never heard what sort of oil he has.
Exception
might be taken to the name bestowed upon this whale, on the ground
of its indistinctness. For we are all killers, on land and on
sea; Bonapartes and Sharks included.
BOOK II
(Octavo), Chapter V (Thrasher). - This
gentleman is famous for his tail, which he uses for a ferule in
thrashing his foes. He mounts the Folio Whale's back, and as he
swims, he works his passage by flogging him; as some schoolmasters
get along in the world by a similar process. Still less is known
of the Thrasher than of the Killer. Both are outlaws, even in the
lawless seas.
Thus ends BOOK II (Octavo), and
begins BOOK III (Duodecimo).
DUODECIMOES.These include the smaller whales. - I, The
Huzza Porpoise; II, The Algerine Porpoise; III, The
Mealy-mouthed Porpoise.
To those who have not
chanced specially to study the subject, it may possibly seem
strange, that fishes not commonly exceeding four or five feet
should be marshalled among WHALES - a word, which, in the popular
sense, always conveys an idea of hugeness. But the creatures set
down above as Duodecimoes are infallibly whales, by the terms of
my definition of what a whale is - i.e. a spouting fish, with
a horizontal tail.
BOOK III (Duodecimo),
Chapter I (Huzza Porpoise). - This is the common
porpoise found almost all over the globe. The name is of my own
bestowal; for there are more than one sort of porpoises, and
something must be done to distinguish them. I call them thus,
because he always swims in hilarious shoals, which upon the broad
sea keep tossing themselves to heaven like caps in a Fourth-of-
July crowd. Their appearance is generally hailed with delight by
the mariner. Full of fine spirits, they invariably come from the
breezy billows to windward. They are the lads that always live
before the wind. They are accounted a lucky omen. If you
yourself can withstand three cheers at beholding these vivacious
fish, then heaven help ye; the spirit of godly gamesomeness is not
in ye. A well-fed, plump Huzza Porpoise will yield you one good
gallon of good oil. But the fine and delicate fluid extracted from
his jaws is exceedingly valuable. It is in request among jewellers
and watchmakers.
Sailors put it on their hones. Porpoise meat is good eating, you
know. It may never have occurred to you that a porpoise spouts.
Indeed, his spout is so small that it is not very readily
discernible. But the next time you have a chance, watch him; and
you will then see the great Sperm Whale himself in
miniature.
BOOK III (Duodecimo),
Chapter II (Algerine Porpoise). - A pirate.
Very savage. He is only found, I think, in the Pacific. He is
somewhat larger than the Huzza Porpoise, but much of the same
general make. Provoke him, and he will buckle to a shark. I have
lowered for him many times, but never yet saw him captured.
BOOK III (Duodecimo), Chapter III (Mealy-
mouthed Porpoise). The largest kind of Porpoise; and only
found in the Pacific, so far as it is known. The only English
name, by which he has hitherto been designated, is that of the
fishers - Right-Whale Porpoise, from the circumstance that he
is chiefly found in the vicinity of that Folio. In shape, he
differs in some degree from the Huzza Porpoise, being of a less
rotund and jolly girth; indeed, he is of quite a neat and
gentleman-like figure. He has no fins on his back (most other
porpoises have), he has a lovely tail, and sentimental Indian eyes
of a hazel hue. But his mealy-mouth spoils all. Though his
entire back down to his side fins is of a deep sable, yet a
boundary line, distinct as the mark in a ship's hull, called the
"bright waist", that line streaks him from stem to stern,
with two separate colors, black above and white below. The white
comprises part of his head, and the whole of his mouth, which
makes him look as if he had just escaped from a felonious visit to
a meal-bag. A most mean and mealy aspect! His oil is much like
that of the common porpoise.
Beyond the Duodecimo, this system does not proceed,
inasmuch as the Porpoise is the smallest of the whales. Above,
you have all the Leviathans of note. But there are a rabble of
uncertain, fugitive, half-fabulous whales, which, as an American
whaleman, I know by reputation, but not personally. I shall
enumerate them by their forecastle appellations; for possibly such
a list may be valuable to future investigators, who may complete
what I have here but begun. If any of the following
whales, shall hereafter be caught and marked, then he can readily
be incorporated into this System, according to his Folio, Octavo,
or Duodecimo magnitude: - The Bottle-Nose Whale; the Junk Whale;
the Pudding-Headed Whale; the Cape Whale; the Leading Whale; the
Cannon Whale; the Scragg Whale; the Coppered Whale; the Elephant
Whale; the Iceberg Whale; the Quog Whale; the Blue Whale; etc.
From Icelandic, Dutch, and old English authorities, there might be
quoted other lists of uncertain whales, blessed with all manner of
uncouth names. But I omit them as altogether obsolete; and can
hardly help suspecting them for mere sounds, full of Leviathanism,
but signifying nothing.
Finally: It was stated at
the outset, that this system would not be here, and at once,
perfected. You cannot but plainly see that I have kept my word.
But I now leave my cetological System standing thus unfinished,
even as the great Cathedral of Cologne was left, with the crane
still standing upon the top of the uncompleted tower. For small
erections may be finished by their first architects; grand ones,
true ones, ever leave the copestone to posterity. God keep me
from ever completing anything. This whole book is but a draught
- nay, but the draught of a draught. Oh Time, Strength, Cash,
and Patience!
Concerning the officers of the whale-craft, this
seems as good a place as any to set down a little domestic
peculiarity on ship-board, arising from the existence of the
harpooneer class of officers, a class unknown of course in any
other marine than the whale-fleet.
The large
importance attached to the harpooneer's vocation is evinced by the
fact, that originally in the old Dutch Fishery, two centuries and
more ago, the command of a whale ship was
not wholly lodged in the person now called the captain, but was
divided between him and an officer called the Specksynder.
Literally this word means Fat-Cutter; usage, however, in time made
it equivalent to Chief Harpooneer. In those days, the captain's
authority was restricted to the navigation and general management
of the vessel: while over the whale-hunting department and all its
concerns, the Specksynder or Chief Harpooneer reigned supreme. In
the British Greenland Fishery, under the corrupted title of
Specksioneer, this old Dutch official is still retained, but his
former dignity is sadly abridged. At present he ranks simply as
senior Harpooneer; and as such, is but one of the captain's more
inferior subalterns. Nevertheless, as upon the good conduct of
the harpooneers the success of a whaling voyage largely depends,
and since in the American Fishery he is not only an important
officer in the boat, but under certain circumstances (night watches
on a whaling ground) the command of the ship's deck is also his;
therefore the grand political maxim of the sea demands, that he
should nominally live apart from the men before the mast, and be
in some way distinguished as their professional superior; though
always, by them, familiarly regarded as their social equal.
Now, the grand distinction drawn between officer and man at
sea, is this - the first lives aft, the last forward. Hence, in
whale-ships and merchantmen alike, the mates have their quarters
with the captain; and so, too, in most of the American whalers the
harpooneers are lodged in the after part of the ship. That is to
say, they take their meals in the captain's cabin, and sleep in a
place indirectly communicating with it.
Though the
long period of a Southern whaling voyage (by far the longest of
all voyages now or ever made by man), the peculiar perils of it,
and the community of interest prevailing among a company, all of
whom, high or low, depend for their profits, not upon fixed wages,
but upon their common luck, together with their common vigilance,
intrepidity, and hard work; though all these things do in some
cases tend to beget a less rigorous discipline than in merchantmen
generally; yet, never mind how much like an old Mesopotamian
family these whalemen may, in some primitive instances, live
together; for all that,
the punctilious externals, at least, of the quarter-deck are seldom
materially relaxed, and in no instance done away. Indeed, many
are the Nantucket ships in which you will see the skipper parading
his quarter-deck with an elated grandeur not surpassed in any
military navy; nay, extorting almost as much outward homage as if
he wore the imperial purple, and not the shabbiest of pilot-
cloth.
And though of all men the moody captain of the
Pequod was the least given to that sort of shallowest assumption;
and though the only homage he ever exacted, was implicit,
instantaneous obedience; though he required no man to remove the
shoes from his feet ere stepping upon the quarter-deck; and though
there were times when, owing to peculiar circumstances connected
with events hereafter to be detailed, he addressed them in unusual
terms, whether of condescension or in terrorem, or
otherwise; yet even Captain Ahab was by no means unobservant of
the paramount forms and usages of the sea.
Nor,
perhaps, will it fail to be eventually perceived, that behind those
forms and usages, as it were, he sometimes masked himself;
incidentally making use of them for other and more private ends
than they were legitimately intended to subserve. That certain
sultanism of his brain, which had otherwise in a good degree
remained unmanifested; through those forms that same sultanism
became incarnate in an irresistible dictatorship. For be a man's
intellectual superiority what it will, it can never assume the
practical, available supremacy over other men, without the aid of
some sort of external arts and entrenchments, always, in
themselves, more or less paltry and base. This it is, that for
ever keeps God's true princes of the Empire from the world's
hustings; and leaves the highest honors that this air can give, to
those men who become famous more through their infinite
inferiority to the choice hidden handful of the Divine Inert, than
through their undoubted superiority over the dead level of the
mass. Such large virtue lurks in these small things when extreme
political superstitions invest them, that in some royal instances
even to idiot imbecility they have imparted potency. But when, as
in the case of Nicholas the Czar, the ringed crown of geographical
empire encircles an imperial brain;
then, the plebeian herds crouch abased before the tremendous
centralization. Nor, will the tragic dramatist who would depict
mortal indomitableness in its fullest sweep and direct swing, ever
forget a hint, incidentally so important in his art, as the one
now alluded to.
But Ahab, my Captain, still moves
before me in all his Nantucket grimness and shagginess; and in this
episode touching Emperors and Kings, I must not conceal that I
have only to do with a poor old whale-hunter like him; and,
therefore, all outward majestical trappings and housings are
denied me. Oh, Ahab! what shall be grand in thee, it must needs
be plucked at from the skies, and dived for in the deep, and
featured in the unbodied air!
*x*
*x moby_034.html/Chapter xxxiv - THE CABIN-TABLE*
It is noon; and Dough-Boy, the steward, thrusting
his pale loaf-of-bread face from the cabin-scuttle, announces
dinner to his lord and master; who, sitting in the lee quarter-
boat, has just been taking an observation of the sun; and is now
mutely reckoning the latitude on the smooth, medallion-shaped
tablet, reserved for that daily purpose on the upper part of his
ivory leg. From his complete inattention to the tidings, you
would think that moody Ahab had not heard his menial. But
presently, catching hold of the mizen shrouds, he swings himself
to the deck, and in an even, unexhilarated voice, saying,
"Dinner, Mr. Starbuck," disappears into the cabin.
When the last echo of his sultan's step has died away, and
Starbuck, the first Emir, has every reason to suppose that he is
seated, then Starbuck rouses from his quietude, takes a few turns
along the planks, and, after a grave peep into the binnacle, says,
with some touch of pleasantness, "Dinner, Mr. Stubb," and
descends the scuttle. The second Emir lounges about the rigging
awhile, and then slightly shaking the main brace, to see whether it
be all right with that important rope, he likewise takes up the
old burden, and with a rapid "Dinner, Mr. Flask", follows
after his predecessors.
But the third emir, now
seeing himself all alone on the quarter-deck, seems to feel
relieved from some curious restraint; for, tipping all sorts of
knowing winks in all sorts of directions, and kicking off his
shoes, he strikes into a sharp but noiseless squall of a hornpipe
right over the Grand Turk's head; and then, by a dexterous
sleight, pitching his cap up into the mizentop for a shelf, he
goes down rollicking, so far at least as he remains visible from
the deck, reversing all other processions, by bringing up the rear
with music. But ere stepping into the cabin doorway below, he
pauses, ships a new face altogether, and, then, independent,
hilarious little Flask enters King Ahab's presence, in the
character of Abjectus, or the Slave.
It is not the
least among the strange things bred by the intense artificialness
of sea-usages, that while in the open air of the deck some
officers will, upon provocation, bear themselves boldly and
defyingly enough towards their commander; yet, ten to one, let
those very officers the next moment go down to their customary
dinner in that same commander's cabin, and straightway their
inoffensive, not to say deprecatory and humble air towards him, as
he sits at the head of the table; this is marvellous, sometimes
most comical. Wherefore this difference? A problem? Perhaps
not. To have been Belshazzar, King of Babylon; and to have been
Belshazzar, not haughtily but courteously, therein certainly must
have been some touch of mundane grandeur. But he who in the
rightly regal and intelligent spirit presides over his own private
dinner-table of invited guests, that man's unchallenged power and
dominion of individual influence for the time; that man's royalty
of state transcends Belshazzar's, for Belshazzar was not the
greatest. Who has but once dined his friends, has tasted what it
is to be Caesar. It is a witchery of social czarship which there
is no withstanding. Now, if to this consideration you superadd
the official supremacy of a ship-master, then, by inference, you
will derive the cause of that peculiarity of sea-life just
mentioned.
Over his ivory-inlaid table, Ahab presided like a mute, maned
sea-lion on the white coral beach, surrounded by his warlike but
still deferential cubs. In his own proper turn, each officer
waited to be served. They were as little children before Ahab;
and yet, in Ahab, there seemed not to lurk the smallest social
arrogance. With one mind, their intent eyes all fastened upon the
old man's knife, as he carved the chief dish before him. I do not
suppose that for the world they would have profaned that moment
with the slightest observation, even upon so neutral a topic as
the weather. No! And when reaching out his knife and fork,
between which the slice of beef was locked, Ahab thereby motioned
Starbuck's plate towards him, the mate received his meat as though
receiving alms; and cut it tenderly; and a little started if,
perchance, the knife grazed against the plate; and chewed it
noiselessly; and swallowed it, not without circumspection. For,
like the Coronation banquet at Frankfort, where the German Emperor
profoundly dines with the seven Imperial Electors, so these cabin
meals were somehow solemn meals, eaten in awful silence; and yet
at table old Ahab forbade not conversation; only he himself was
dumb. What a relief it was to choking Stubb, when a rat made a
sudden racket in the hold below. And poor little Flask, he was the
youngest son, and little boy of this weary family party. His were
the shinbones of the saline beef; his would have been the
drumsticks. For Flask to have presumed to help himself, this must
have seemed to him tantamount to larceny in the first degree. Had
he helped himself at that table, doubtless, never more would he
have been able to hold his head up in this honest world;
nevertheless, strange to say, Ahab never forbade him. And had
Flask helped himself, the chances were Ahab had never so much as
noticed it. Least of all, did flask presume to help himself to
butter. Whether he thought the owners of the ship denied it to
him, on account of its clotting his clear, sunny complexion; or
whether he deemed that, on so long a voyage in such marketless
waters, butter was at a premium, and therefore was not for him, a
subaltern; however it was, Flask, alas! was a butterless
man!
Another thing. Flask was the last person down
at the dinner,
and Flask is the first man up. Consider! For hereby Flask's
dinner was badly jammed in point of time. Starbuck and Stubb both
had the start of him; and yet they also have the privilege of
lounging in the rear. If Stubb even, who is but a peg higher than
Flask, happens to have but a small appetite, and soon shows
symptoms of concluding his repast, then Flask must bestir himself,
he will not get more than three mouthfuls that day; for it is
against holy usage for Stubb to precede Flask to the deck.
Therefore it was that Flask once admitted in private, that ever
since he had arisen to the dignity of an officer, from that moment
he had never known what it was to be otherwise than hungry, more
or less. For what he ate did not so much relieve his hunger, as
keep it immortal in him. Peace and satisfaction, thought Flask,
have for ever departed from my stomach. I am an officer; but, how
I wish I could fist a bit of old-fashioned beef in the forecastle,
as I used to when I was before the mast. There's the fruits of
promotion now; there's the vanity of glory: there's the insanity
of life! Besides, if it were so that any mere sailor of the
Pequod had a grudge against Flask in Flask's official capacity,
all that sailor had to do, in order to obtain ample vengeance, was
to go aft at dinner-time, and get a peep at Flask through the cabin
sky-light, sitting silly and dumfoundered before awful
Ahab.
Now, Ahab and his three mates formed what may
be called the first table in the Pequod's cabin. After their
departure, taking place in inverted order to their arrival, the
canvas cloth was cleared, or rather was restored to some hurried
order by the pallid steward. And then the three harpooneers were
bidden to the feast, they being its residuary legatees. They made
a sort of temporary servants' hall of the high and mighty
cabin.
In strange contrast to the hardly tolerable
constraint and nameless invisible domineerings of the captain's
table, was the entire care-free license and ease, the almost
frantic democracy of those inferior fellows the harpooneers.
While their masters, the mates, seemed afraid of the sound of the
hinges of their own jaws, the harpooneers chewed their food with
such a relish that there was a report to it. They dined like
lords; they filled their bellies like Indian ships all day loading
with spices. Such portentous
appetites had Queequeg and Tashtego, that to fill out the vacancies
made by the previous repast, often the pale Dough-Boy was fain to
bring on a great baron of salt-junk, seemingly quarried out of the
solid ox. And if he were not lively about it, if he did not go
with a nimble hop-skip-and-jump, then Tashtego had an
ungentlemanly way of accelerating him by darting a fork at his
back, harpoonwise. And once Daggoo, seized with a sudden humor,
assisted Dough-Boy's memory by snatching him up bodily, and
thrusting his head into a great empty wooden trencher, while
Tashtego, knife in hand, began laying out the circle preliminary
to scalping him. He was naturally a very nervous, shuddering sort
of little fellow, this bread-faced steward; the progeny of a
bankrupt baker and a hospital nurse. And what with the standing
spectacle of the black terrific Ahab, and the periodical
tumultuous visitations of these three savages, Dough-Boy's whole
life was one continual lip-quiver. Commonly, after seeing the
harpooneers furnished with all things they demanded, he would
escape from their clutches into his little pantry adjoining, and
fearfully peep out at them through the blinds of its door, till
all was over.
It was a sight to see Queequeg seated
over against Tashtego, opposing his filed teeth to the Indian's:
crosswise to them, Daggoo seated on the floor, for a bench would
have brought his hearse-plumed head to the low carlines; at every
motion of his colossal limbs, making the low cabin framework to
shake, as when an African elephant goes passenger in a ship. But
for all this, the great negro was wonderfully abstemious, not to
say dainty. It seemed hardly possible that by such comparatively
small mouthfuls he could keep up the vitality diffused through so
broad, baronial, and superb a person. But, doubtless, this noble
savage fed strong and drank deep of the abounding element of air;
and through his dilated nostrils snuffed in the sublime life of
the worlds. Not by beef or by bread, are giants made or
nourished. But Queequeg, he had a mortal, barbaric smack of the
lip in eating - an ugly sound enough - so much so, that the
trembling Dough-Boy almost looked to see whether any marks of
teeth lurked in his own lean arms. And when he would hear
Tashtego singing out for him to produce himself,
that his bones might be picked, the simple-witted Steward all but
shattered the crockery hanging round him in the pantry, by his
sudden fits of the palsy. Nor did the whetstone which the
harpooneers carried in their pockets, for their lances and other
weapons; and with which whetstones, at dinner, they would
ostentatiously sharpen their knives; that grating sound did not at
all tend to tranquillize poor Dough-Boy. How could he forget that
in his Island days, Queequeg, for one, must certainly have been
guilty of some murderous, convivial indiscretions. Alas! Dough-
Boy! hard fares the white waiter who waits upon cannibals. Not
a napkin should he carry on his arm, but a buckler. in good time,
though, to his great delight, the three salt-sea warriors would
rise and depart; to his credulous, fable-mongering ears, all their
martial bones jingling in them at every step, like Moorish
scimetars in scabbards.
But, though these barbarians
dined in the cabin, and nominally lived there; still, being
anything but sedentary in their habits, they were scarcely ever in
it except at meal-times, and just before sleeping-time, when they
passed through it to their own peculiar quarters.
In
this one matter, Ahab seemed no exception to most American whale
captains, who, as a set, rather incline to the opinion that by
rights the ship's cabin belongs to them; and that it is by
courtesy alone that anybody else is, at any time, permitted there.
So that, in real truth, the mates and harpooneers of the Pequod
might more properly be said to have lived out of the cabin than in
it. For when they did enter it, it was something as a street-door
enters a house; turning inwards for a moment, only to be turned
out the next; and, as a permanent thing, residing in the open air.
Nor did they lose much hereby; in the cabin was no companionship;
socially, Ahab was inaccessible. Though nominally included in the
census of Christendom, he was still an alien to it. He lived in
the world, as the last of the Grisly Bears lived in settled
Missouri. And as when Spring and Summer had departed, that wild
Logan of the woods, burying himself in the hollow of a tree, lived
out the winter there, sucking his own paws; so, in his inclement,
howling old age, Ahab's soul, shut up in the caved trunk of his
body, there fed upon the sullen paws of its gloom!
*x*
*x moby_035.html/Chapter xxxv - THE MAST-HEAD*
It was during the more pleasant weather, that in due
rotation with the other seamen my first mast-head came
round.
In most American whalemen the mast-heads are
manned almost simultaneously with the vessel's leaving her port;
even though she may have fifteen thousand miles, and more, to sail
ere reaching her proper cruising ground. and if, after a three,
four, or five years' voyage she is drawing nigh home with anything
empty in her - say, an empty vial even - then, her mast-heads
are kept manned to the last; and not till her skysail-poles sail
in among the spires of the port, does she altogether relinquish
the hope of capturing one whale more.
Now, as the
business of standing mast-heads, ashore or afloat, is a very
ancient and interesting one, let us in some measure expatiate here.
I take it, that the earliest standers of mast-heads were the old
Egyptians; because, in all my researches, I find none prior to
them. For though their progenitors, the builders of Babel, must
doubtless, by their tower, have intended to rear the loftiest
mast-head in all Asia, or Africa either; yet (ere the final truck
was put to it) as that great stone mast of theirs may be said to
have gone by the board, in the dread gale of God's wrath;
therefore, we cannot give these Babel builders priority over the
Egyptians. And that the Egyptians were a nation of mast-head
standers, is an assertion based upon the general belief among
archaeologists, that the first pyramids were founded for
astronomical purposes: a theory singularly supported by the
peculiar stair-like formation of all four sides of those edifices;
whereby, with prodigious long upliftings of their legs, those old
astronomers were wont to mount to the apex, and sing out for new
stars; even as the look-outs of a modern ship sing out for a sail,
or a whale just bearing in sight. In Saint Stylites, the famous
Christian hermit of old times, who built him a lofty stone pillar
in the desert and spent the whole latter portion of
his life on its summit, hoisting his food from the ground with a
tackle; in him we have a remarkable instance of a dauntless
stander-of-mast-heads; who was not to be driven from his place by
fogs or frosts, rain, hail, or sleet; but valiantly facing
everything out to the last, literally died at his post. Of modern
standers-of-mast-heads we have but a lifeless set; mere stone,
iron, and bronze men; who, though well capable of facing out a
stiff gale, are still entirely incompetent to the business of
singing out upon discovering any strange sight. There is
Napoleon; who, upon the top of the column of Vendo^me, stands
with arms folded, some one hundred and fifty feet in the air;
careless, now, who rules the decks below; whether Louis Philippe,
Louis Blanc, or Louis the Devil. Great Washington, too, stands
high aloft on his towering main-mast in Baltimore, and like one of
Hercules' pillars, his column marks that point of human grandeur
beyond which few mortals will go. Admiral Nelson, also, on a
capstan of gun-metal, stands his mast-head in Trafalgar Square;
and ever when most obscured by that London smoke, token is yet
given that a hidden hero is there; for where there is smoke, must
be fire. But neither great Washington, nor Napoleon, nor Nelson,
will answer a single hail from below, however madly invoked to
befriend by their counsels the distracted decks upon which they
gaze; however it may be surmised, that their spirits penetrate
through the thick haze of the future, and descry what shoals and
what rocks must be shunned.
It may seem unwarrantable
to couple in any respect the mast-head standers of the land with
those of the sea; but that in truth it is not so, is plainly
evinced by an item for which Obed Macy, the sole historian of
Nantucket, stands accountable. The worthy Obed tells us, that in
the early times of the whale fishery, ere ships were regularly
launched in pursuit of the game, the people of that island erected
lofty spars along the sea-coast, to which the look-outs ascended by
means of nailed cleats, something as fowls go upstairs in a hen-
house. A few years ago this same plan was adopted by the Bay
whalemen of New Zealand, who, upon descrying the game, gave notice
to the ready-manned boats nigh the beach. But this custom has now
become obsolete; turn we then to the one proper mast-head, that of
a whale-ship
at sea. The three mast-heads are kept manned from sun-rise to sun-
set; the seamen taking their regular turns (as at the helm), and
relieving each other every two hours. In the serene weather of
the tropics it is exceedingly pleasant the mast-head; nay, to a
dreamy meditative man it is delightful. There you stand, a hundred
feet above the silent decks, striding along the deep, as if the
masts were gigantic stilts, while beneath you and between your
legs, as it were, swim the hugest monsters of the sea, even as
ships once sailed between the boots of the famous Colossus at old
Rhodes. There you stand, lost in the infinite series of the sea,
with nothing ruffled but the waves. The tranced ship indolently
rolls; the drowsy trade winds blow; everything resolves you into
languor. For the most part, in this tropic whaling life, a
sublime uneventfulness invests you; you hear no news; read no
gazettes; extras with startling accounts of commonplaces never
delude you into unnecessary excitements; you hear of no domestic
afflictions; bankrupt securities; fall of stocks; are never
troubled with the thought of what you shall have for dinner
- for all your meals for three years and more are snugly stowed
in casks, and your bill of fare is immutable.
In one
of those southern whalemen, on a long three or four years' voyage,
as often happens, the sum of the various hours you spend at the
mast-head would amount to several entire months. And it is much
to be deplored that the place to which you devote so considerable
a portion of the whole term of your natural life, should be so
sadly destitute of anything approaching to a cosy inhabitiveness,
or adapted to breed a comfortable localness of feeling, such as
pertains to a bed, a hammock, a hearse, a sentry box, a pulpit, a
coach, or any other of those small and snug contrivances in which
men temporarily isolate themselves. Your most usual point of
perch is the head of the t' gallant-mast, where you stand upon two
thin parallel sticks (almost peculiar to whalemen) called the t'
gallant cross-trees. Here, tossed about by the sea, the beginner
feels about as cosy as he would standing on a bull's horns. To be
sure, in cold weather you may carry your house aloft with you, in
the shape of a watch-coat; but properly speaking the thickest
watch-coat is no more of a house than the unclad body; for as the
soul is glued inside
of its fleshly tabernacle, and cannot freely move about in it, nor
even move out of it, without running great risk of perishing (like
an ignorant pilgrim crossing the snowy Alps in winter); so a
watch-coat is not so much of a house as it is a mere envelope, or
additional skin encasing you. You cannot put a shelf or chest of
drawers in your body, and no more can you make a convenient closet
of your watch-coat.
Concerning all this, it is much
to be deplored that the mast-heads of a southern whale ship are
unprovided with those enviable little tents or pulpits, called
crow's-nests, in which the lookouts of a Greenland whaler
are protected from the inclement weather of the frozen seas. In
the fire-side narrative of Captain Sleet, entitled "A Voyage
among the Icebergs, in quest of the Greenland Whale, and
incidentally for the re-discovery of the Lost Icelandic Colonies
of Old Greenland;" in this admirable volume, all standers of
mast-heads are furnished with a charmingly circumstantial account
of the then recently invented crow's-nest of the Glacier,
which was the name of Captain Sleet's good craft. He called it
the Sleet's crow's-nest, in honor of himself; he being the
original inventor and patentee, and free from all ridiculous false
delicacy, and holding that if we call our own children after our
own names (we fathers being the original inventors and patentees),
so likewise should we denominate after ourselves any other
apparatus we may beget. In shape, the Sleet's crow's-nest is
something like a large tierce or pipe; it is open above, however,
where it is furnished with a movable side-screen to keep to
windward of your head in a hard gale. Being fixed on the summit
of the mast, you ascend into it through a little trap-hatch in the
bottom. On the after side, or side next the stern of the ship, is
a comfortable seat, with a locker underneath for umbrellas,
comforters, and coats. In front is a leather rack, in which to
keep your speaking trumpet, pipe, telescope, and other nautical
conveniences. When Captain Sleet in person stood his mast-head in
this crow's nest of his, he tells us that he always had a rifle
with him (also fixed in the rack), together with a powder flask
and shot, for the purpose of popping off the stray Narwhales, or
vagrant sea unicorns infesting those waters; for you cannot
successfully shoot at them from
the deck owing to the resistance of the water, but to shoot down
upon them is a very different thing. Now, it was plainly a labor
of love for Captain Sleet to describe, as he does, all the little
detailed conveniences of his crow's-nest; but though he so
enlarges upon many of these, and though he treats us to a very
scientific account of his experiments in this crow's-nest, with a
small compass he kept there for the purpose of counteracting the
errors resulting from what is called the "local attraction"
of all binnacle magnets; an error ascribable to the horizontal
vicinity of the iron in the ship's planks, and in the Glacier's
case, perhaps, to there having been so many broken-down
blacksmiths among her crew; I say, that though the Captain is very
discreet and scientific here, yet, for all his learned "binnacle
deviations," "azimuth compass observations," and
"approximate errors," he knows very well, Captain Sleet,
that he was not so much immersed in those profound magnetic
meditations, as to fail being attracted occasionally towards that
well replenished little case-bottle, so nicely tucked in on one
side of his crow's nest, within easy reach of his hand. Though,
upon the whole, I greatly admire and even love the brave, the
honest, and learned Captain; yet I take it very ill of him that he
should so utterly ignore that case-bottle, seeing what a faithful
friend and comforter it must have been, while with mittened
fingers and hooded head he was studying the mathematics aloft there
in that bird's nest within three or four perches of the
pole.
But if we Southern whale-fishers are not so
snugly housed aloft as Captain Sleet and his Greenland-men were;
yet that disadvantage is greatly counterbalanced by the widely
contrasting serenity of those seductive seas in which we South
fishers mostly float. For one, I used to lounge up the rigging
very leisurely, resting in the top to have a chat with Queequeg,
or any one else off duty whom I might find there; then ascending
a little way further, and throwing a lazy leg over the top-sail
yard, take a preliminary view of the watery pastures, and so at
last mount to my ultimate destination.
Let me make a
clean breast of it here, and frankly admit that I kept but sorry
guard. With the problem of the universe revolving in me, how
could I - being left completely to myself
at such a thought-engendering altitude, - how could I but lightly
hold my obligations to observe all whale-ships' standing orders,
"Keep your weather eye open, and sing out every
time."
And let me in this place movingly admonish
you, ye ship-owners of Nantucket! Beware of enlisting in your
vigilant fisheries any lad with lean brow and hollow eye; given to
unseasonable meditativeness; and who offers to ship with the
phaedon instead of Bowditch in his head. Beware of such an one,
I say; your whales must be seen before they can be killed; and
this sunken-eyed young Platonist will tow you ten wakes round the
world, and never make you one pint of sperm the richer. Nor are
these monitions at all unneeded. For nowadays, the whale-fishery
furnishes !n asylum for many romantic, melancholy, and absent-
minded young men, disgusted with the carking cares of earth, and
seeking sentiment in tar and blubber. Childe Harold not
unfrequently perches himself upon the mast-head of some luckless
disappointed whale-ship, and in moody phrase ejaculates: -
"Roll on, thou deep and dark blue ocean, roll!
Ten thousand blubber-hunters sweep over thee in vain."
Very often do the captains of such ships take those absent-minded
young philosophers to task, upbraiding them with not feeling
sufficient "interest" in the voyage; half-hinting that they
are so hopelessly lost to all honorable ambition, as that in their
secret souls they would rather not see whales than otherwise. But
all in vain; those young Platonists have a notion that their
vision is imperfect; they are short-sighted; what use, then, to
strain the visual nerve? They have left their opera-glasses at
home.
"Why, thou monkey," said a harpooneer to
one of these lads, "we've been cruising now hard upon three
years, and thou hast not raised a whale yet. Whales are scarce as
hen's teeth whenever thou art up here." Perhaps they were; or
perhaps there might have been shoals of them in the far horizon;
but lulled into such an opium-like listlessness of vacant,
unconscious reverie is this absent-minded youth by the blending
cadence of waves with thoughts, that at last he loses his
identity; takes the mystic
ocean at his feet for the visible image of that deep, blue,
bottomless soul, pervading mankind and nature; and every strange,
half-seen, gliding, beautiful thing that eludes him; every dimly-
discovered, uprising fin of some undiscernible form, seems to him
the embodiment of those elusive thoughts that only people the soul
by continually flitting through it. In this enchanted mood, thy
spirit ebbs away to whence it came; becomes diffused through time
and space; like Cranmer's sprinkled Pantheistic ashes, forming at
last a part of every shore the round globe over.
There is no life in thee, now, except that rocking life
imparted by a gently rolling ship; by her, borrowed from the sea;
by the sea, from the inscrutable tides of God. But while this
sleep, this dream is on ye, move your foot or hand an inch; slip
your hold at all; and your identity comes back in horror. Over
Descartian vortices you hover. And perhaps, at mid-day, in the
fairest weather, with one half-throttled shriek you drop through
that transparent air into the summer sea, no more to rise for
ever. Heed it well, ye Pantheists!
*x*
*x moby_036.html/Chapter xxxvi - THE QUARTER-DECK*
Enter Ahab: Then, all
It was not a great while after the affair of the
pipe, that one morning shortly after breakfast, Ahab, as was his
wont, ascended the cabin-gangway to the deck. There most sea-
captains usually walk at that hour, as country gentlemen, after
the same meal, take a few turns in the garden.
"Soon his
steady, ivory stride was heard, as to and fro he paced his old
rounds, upon planks so familiar to his tread, that they were all
over dented, like geological stones, with the peculiar mark of his
walk. Did you fixedly gaze, too, upon that ribbed
and dented brow; there also, you would see still stranger foot-
prints - the foot-prints of his one unsleeping, ever-pacing
thought.
But on the occasion in question, those
dents looked deeper, even as his nervous step that morning left a
deeper mark. And, so full of his thought was Ahab, that at every
uniform turn that he made, now at the main-mast and now at the
binnacle, you could almost see that thought turn in him as he
turned, and pace in him as he paced; so completely possessing him,
indeed, that it all but seemed the inward mould of every outer
movement.
"D'ye mark him, Flask?" whispered
Stubb; "the chick that's in him pecks the shell. T'will soon
be out."
The hours wore on; - Ahab now shut up
within his cabin; anon, pacing the deck, with the same intense
bigotry of purpose in his aspect.
It drew near the
close of day. Suddenly he came to a halt by the bulwarks, and
inserting his bone leg into the auger-hole there, and with one
hand grasping a shroud, he ordered Starbuck to send everybody
aft.
"Sir!" said the mate, astonished at an
order seldom or never given on ship-board except in some
extraordinary case.
"Send everybody aft,"
repeated Ahab. "Mast-heads, there! come down!"
When the entire ship's company were assembled, and with
curious and not wholly unapprehensive faces, were eyeing him, for
he looked not unlike the weather horizon when a storm is coming
up, Ahab, after rapidly glancing over the bulwarks, and then
darting his eyes among the crew, started from his standpoint; and
as though not a soul were nigh him resumed his heavy turns upon
the deck. With bent head and half-slouched hat he continued to
pace, unmindful of the wondering whispering among the men; till
Stubb cautiously whispered to Flask, that Ahab must have summoned
them there for the purpose of witnessing a pedestrian feat. But
this did not last long. Vehemently pausing, he cried: -
"What do ye do when ye see a whale, men?"
"Sing out for him!" was the impulsive rejoinder from
a score of clubbed voices.
"Good!" cried Ahab, with a wild approval in his tones;
observing the hearty animation into which his unexpected question
had so magnetically thrown them.
"And what do ye
next, men?"
"Lower away, and after
him!"
"And what tune is it ye pull to,
men?"
"A dead whale or a stove boat!"
More and more strangely and fiercely glad and approving,
grew the countenance of the old man at every shout; while the
mariners began to gaze curiously at each other, as if marvelling
how it was that they themselves became so excited at such
seemingly purposeless questions.
But, they were all
eagerness again, as Ahab, now half-revolving in his pivot-hole,
with one hand reaching high up a shroud, and tightly, almost
convulsively grasping it, addressed them thus: -
"All ye mast-headers have before now heard me give orders about
a White Whale. Look ye! d'ye see this Spanish ounce of gold? - holding
up a broad bright coin to the sun - it is a sixteen dollar
piece, men. D'ye see it? Mr. Starbuck, hand me yon top-
maul."
While the mate was getting the hammer,
Ahab, without speaking, was slowly rubbing the gold piece against
the skirts of his jacket, as if to heighten its lustre, and
without using any words was meanwhile lowly humming to himself,
producing a sound so strangely muffled and inarticulate that it
seemed the mechanical humming of the wheels of his vitality in
him.
Receiving the top-maul from Starbuck, he
advanced towards the main-mast with the hammer uplifted in one
hand, exhibiting the gold with the other, and with a high raised
voice exclaiming: Whosoever of ye raises me a white-headed whale
with a wrinkled brow and a crooked jaw; whosoever of ye raises me
that white-headed whale, with three holes punctured in his
starboard fluke - look ye, whosoever of ye raises me that same
white whale, he shall have this gold ounce, my boys!
"Huzza! huzza!" cried the seamen, as with swinging
tarpaulins they hailed the act of nailing the gold to the
mast.
It's a white whale," I say, resumed Ahab,
as he threw down
the top-maul; a white whale. "Skin your eyes for him, men; look
sharp for white water; if ye see but a bubble, sing
out."
All this while Tashtego, Daggoo, and
Queequeg had looked on with even more intense interest and
surprise than the rest, and at the mention of the wrinkled brow and
crooked jaw they had started as if each was separately touched by
some specific recollection.
"Captain Ahab,"
said Tashtego, "that white whale must be the same that some
call Moby Dick."
"Moby Dick?" shouted Ahab.
"Do ye know the white whale then, Tash?"
"Does he fan-tail a little curious, sir, before he goes
down?" said the Gay-Header deliberately.
"And
has he a curious spout, too," said Daggoo, "very bushy, even
for a parmacetty, and mighty quick, Captain Ahab?"
"And he have one, two, tree - oh! good many iron in him
hide, too, Captain," cried Queequeg disjointedly, "all
twiske-tee betwisk, like him - him - " faltering hard for a
word, and screwing his hand round and round as though uncorking a
bottle - "like him - him - "
"Corkscrew!" cried Ahab, "aye, Queequeg, the
harpoons lie all twisted and wrenched in him; aye, Daggoo, his
spout is a big one, like a whole shock of wheat, and white as a
pile of our Nantucket wool after the great annual sheep-shearing;
aye, Tashtego, and he fan-tails like a split jib in a squall.
Death and devils! men, it is Moby Dick ye have seen - Moby
Dick - Moby Dick!"
"Captain Ahab," said
Starbuck, who, with Stubb and Flask, had thus far been eyeing his
superior with increasing surprise, but at last seemed struck with
a thought which somewhat explained all the wonder. "Captain
Ahab, I have heard of Moby Dick - but it was not Moby Dick that
took off thy leg?"
"Who told thee that?"
cried Ahab; then pausing, "Aye, Starbuck; aye, my hearties all
round; it was Moby Dick that dismasted me; Moby Dick that brought
me to this dead stump I stand on now. Aye, aye," he shouted
with a terrific, loud, animal sob, like that of a heart-stricken
moose; "Aye, aye! it was that accursed white whale that razeed
me; made a poor pegging
lubber of me for ever and a day!" Then tossing both arms, with
measureless imprecations he shouted out: "Aye, aye! and I'll
chase him round Good Hope, and round the horn, and round the
norway maelstrom, and round perdition's flames before I give him
up. And this is what ye have shipped for, men! to chase that
white whale on both sides of land, and over all sides of earth,
till he spouts black blood and rolls fin out. What say ye, men,
will ye splice hands on it, now? I think ye do look
brave."
"Aye, aye!" shouted the
harpooneers and seamen, running closer to the excited old man:
"A sharp eye for the White Whale; a sharp lance for Moby
Dick!"
"God bless ye," he seemed to half
sob and half shout. "God bless ye, men. Steward! go draw the
great measure of grog. But what's this long face about, Mr.
Starbuck; wilt thou not chase the white whale? art not game for
Moby Dick?"
"I am game for his crooked jaw,
and for the jaws of Death too, Captain Ahab, if it fairly comes in
the way of the business we follow; but I came here to hunt whales,
not my commander's vengeance. How many barrels will thy vengeance
yield thee even if thou gettest it, Captain Ahab? it will not
fetch thee much in our Nantucket market."
"Nantucket market! Hoot! But come closer, Starbuck; thou
requirest a little lower layer. If money's to be the measurer,
man, and the accountants have computed their great counting-house
the globe, by girdling it with guineas, one to every three parts
of an inch; then, let me tell thee, that my vengeance will fetch
a great premium here!"
"He smites his
chest," whispered Stubb, what's that for? methinks it rings
most vast, but hollow."
"Vengeance on a dumb
brute!" cried Starbuck, "that simply smote thee from
blindest instinct! Madness! To be enraged with a dumb thing,
Captain Ahab, seems blasphemous."
"Hark ye yet
again, - the little lower layer. All visible objects, man, are
but as pasteboard masks. But in each event - in the living act,
the undoubted deed - there, some unknown but still reasoning
thing puts forth the mouldings of its features from behind the
unreasoning mask. If man will strike, strike through
the mask! How can the prisoner reach outside except by thrusting
through the wall? To me, the white whale is that wall, shoved
near to me. Sometimes I think there's naught beyond. But 'tis
enough. He tasks me; he heaps me; I see in him outrageous
strength, with an inscrutable malice sinewing it. That inscrutable
thing is chiefly what I hate; and be the white whale agent, or be
the white whale principal, I will wreak that hate upon him. Talk
not to me of blasphemy, man; I'd strike the sun if it insulted me.
For could the sun do that, then could I do the other; since there
is ever a sort of fair play herein, jealousy presiding over all
creations. But not my master, man, is even that fair play. Who's
over me? Truth hath no confines. Take off thine eye! more
intolerable than fiends' glarings is a doltish stare! So, so;
thou reddenest and palest; my heat has melted thee to anger-glow.
But look ye, Starbuck, what is said in heat, that thing unsays
itself. There are men from whom warm words are small indignity.
I meant not to incense thee. Let it go. Look! see yonder Turkish
cheeks of spotted tawn - living, breathing pictures painted by
the sun. The Pagan leopards - the unrecking and unworshipping
things, that live; and seek, and give no reasons for the torrid
life they feel! The crew, man, the crew! Are they not one and all
with Ahab, in this matter of the whale? See Stubb! he laughs!
See yonder Chilian! he snorts to think of it. Stand up amid the
general hurricane, thy one tost sapling cannot, Starbuck! And
what is it? Reckon it. 'Tis but to help strike a fin; no wondrous
feat for Starbuck. What is it more? From this one poor hunt,
then, the best lance out of all Nantucket, surely he will not hang
back, when every foremast-hand has clutched a whetstone? Ah!
constrainings seize thee; I see! the billow lifts thee! Speak,
but speak! - Aye, aye! thy silence, then, that voices
thee. (Aside) something shot from my dilated nostrils, he
has inhaled it in his lungs. Starbuck now is mine; cannot oppose
me now, without rebellion.
"God keep me! - keep
us all!" murmured Starbuck, lowly.
But in his
joy at the enchanted, tacit acquiescence of the mate, Ahab did not
hear his foreboding invocation; nor yet the low laugh from the
hold; nor yet the presaging vibrations of
the winds in the cordage; nor yet the hollow flap of the sails
against the masts, as for a moment their hearts sank in. For
again Starbuck's downcast eyes lighted up with the stubbornness of
life; the subterranean laugh died away; the winds blew on; the
sails filled out; the ship heaved and rolled as before. Ah, ye
admonitions and warnings! why stay ye not when ye come? But
rather are ye predictions than warnings, ye shadows! Yet not so
much predictions from without, as verifications of the foregoing
things within. For with little external to constrain us, the
innermost necessities in our being, these still drive us
on.
"The measure! the measure!" cried
Ahab.
Receiving the brimming pewter, and turning to
the harpooneers, he ordered them to produce their weapons. Then
ranging them before him near the capstan, with their harpoons in
their hands, while his three mates stood at his side with their
lances, and the rest of the ship's company formed a circle round
the group; he stood for an instant searchingly eyeing every man of
his crew. But those wild eyes met his, as the bloodshot eyes of
the prairie wolves meet the eye of their leader, ere he rushes on
at their head in the trail of the bison; but, alas! only to fall
into the hidden snare of the Indian.
"Drink and
pass!" he cried, handing the heavy charged flagon to the
nearest seaman. "The crew alone now drink. Round with it,
round! Short draughts - long swallows, men; 'tis hot as Satan's
hoof. So, so; it goes round excellently. It spiralizes in ye;
forks out at the serpent-snapping eye. well done; almost drained.
That way it went, this way it comes. Hand it me - here's a
hollow! Men, ye seem the years; so brimming life is gulped and
gone. Steward, refill!
"Attend now, my braves.
I have mustered ye all round this capstan; and ye mates, flank me
with your lances; and ye harpooneers, stand there with your irons;
and ye, stout mariners, ring me in, that I may in some sort revive
a noble custom of my fisherman fathers before me. O men, you will
yet see that - Ha! boy, come back? bad pennies come not sooner.
Hand it me. Why, now, this pewter had run brimming again, wer't
not thou St. Vitus' imp - away, thou ague!
"Advance, ye mates! Cross your lances full before me.
Well
done! Let me touch the axis." So saying, with extended arm, he
grasped the three level, radiating lances at their crossed centre;
while so doing, suddenly and nervously twitched them; meanwhile,
glancing intently from Starbuck to Stubb; from Stubb to Flask. It
seemed as though, by some nameless, interior volition, he would
fain have shocked into them the same fiery emotion accumulated
within the Leyden jar of his own magnetic life. The three mates
quailed before his strong, sustained, and mystic aspect. Stubb and
Flask looked sideways from him; the honest eye of Starbuck fell
downright.
"In vain!" cried Ahab; "but,
maybe, 'tis well. For did ye three but once take the full-forced
shock, then mine own electric thing, that had perhaps
expired from out me. Perchance, too, it would have dropped ye
dead. Perchance ye need it not. Down lances! And now, ye mates,
I do appoint ye three cup-bearers to my three pagan kinsmen there
- yon three most honorable gentlemen and noblemen, my valiant
harpooneers. Disdain the task? What, when the great Pope washes
the feet of beggars, using his tiara for ewer? Oh, my sweet
cardinals! your own condescension, that shall bend ye to it. I do
not order ye; ye will it. Cut your seizings and draw the poles,
ye harpooneers!"
Silently obeying the order, the
three harpooneers now stood with the detached iron part of their
harpoons, some three feet long, held, barbs up, before him.
"Stab me not with that keen steel! Cant them; cant them
over! know ye not the goblet end? Turn up the socket! So, so;
now, ye cup-bearers, advance. The irons! take them; hold them
while I fill! Forthwith, slowly going from one officer to the
other, he brimmed the harpoon sockets with the fiery waters from
the pewter.
"Now, three to three, ye stand.
Commend the murderous chalices! Bestow them, ye who are now made
parties to this indissoluble league. Ha! Starbuck! but the deed
is done! Yon ratifying sun now waits to sit upon it. Drink, ye
harpooneers! drink and swear, ye men that man the deathful
whaleboat's bow - Death to Moby Dick! God hunt us all, if we do
not hunt Moby Dick to his death!" The long, barbed steel
goblets were lifted; and to cries and maledictions against the
white whale, the spirits
were simultaneously quaffed down with a hiss. Starbuck paled, and
turned, and shivered. Once more, and finally, the replenished
pewter went the rounds among the frantic crew; when, waving his
free hand to them, they all dispersed; and Ahab retired within his
cabin.
*x*
*x moby_037.html/Chapter xxxvii - SUNSET*
The cabin; by the stern windows; Ahab sitting alone, and
gazing out
I leave a white and turbid wake; pale waters, paler
cheeks, where'er I sail. The envious billows sidelong swell to
whelm my track; let them; but first I pass.
Yonder,
by the ever-brimming goblet's rim, the warm waves blush like wine.
The gold brow plumbs the blue. The diver sun - slow dived from
noon, - goes down; my soul mounts up! she wearies with her
endless hill. Is, then, the crown too heavy that I wear? this
Iron Crown of Lombardy. Yet is it bright with many a gem; I, the
wearer, see not its far flashings; but darkly feel that I wear
that, that dazzlingly confounds. 'Tis iron - that I know - not
gold. 'Tis split, too - that I feel; the jagged edge galls me
so, my brain seems to beat against the solid metal; aye, steel
skull, mine; the sort that needs no helmet in the most brain-
battering fight!
Dry heat upon my brow? Oh! time
was, when as the sunrise nobly spurred me, so the sunset soothed.
No more. This lovely light, it lights not me; all loveliness is
anguish to me, since I can ne'er enjoy. Gifted with the high
perception, I lack the low, enjoying power; damned, most subtly
and most malignantly! damned in the midst of Paradise! Good night
- good night! Waving his hand, he moves from the
window.
'Twas not so hard a task. I thought
to find one stubborn, at
the least; but my one cogged circle fits into all their various
wheels, and they revolve. Or, if you will, like so many ant-hills
of powder, they all stand before me; and I their match. Oh, hard!
that to fire others, the match itself must needs be wasting! What
I've dared, I've willed; and what I've willed, I'll do! They
think me mad - Starbuck does; but I'm demoniac, I am madness
maddened! That wild madness that's only calm to comprehend
itself! The prophecy was that I should be dismembered; and - Aye!
I lost this leg. I now prophesy that I will dismember my
dismemberer. Now, then, be the prophet and the fulfiller one.
That's more than ye, ye great gods, ever were. I laugh and hoot
at ye, ye cricket-players, ye pugilists, ye deaf Burkes and
blinded Bendigoes! I will not say as school-boys do to bullies,
- Take some one of your own size; don't pommel me! No, ye've
knocked me down, and I am up again; but ye have run and hidden.
Come forth from behind your cotton bags! I have no long gun to
reach ye. Come, Ahab's compliments to ye; come and see if ye can
swerve me. Swerve me? ye cannot swerve me, else ye swerve
yourselves! man has ye there. Swerve me? The path to my fixed
purpose is laid with iron rails, whereon my soul is grooved to run.
Over unsounded gorges, through the rifled hearts of mountains,
under torrents' beds, unerringly I rush! Naught's an obstacle,
naught's an angle to the iron way!
*x*
*x moby_038.html/Chapter xxxviii - DUSK*
By the Mainmast; Starbuck leaning against it.
My soul is more than matched; she's overmanned; and
by a madman! Insufferable sting, that sanity should ground arms
on such a field! But he drilled deep down, and blasted all my
reason out of me! I think I see his impious end; but feel that
I must help him to it. Will I, nill I, the ineffable thing has
tied me to him; tows me with a cable I have no knife to cut.
Horrible old man! Who's over him, he cries; - aye, he would be
a democrat to all above; look, how he lords it over all below!
Oh! I plainly see my miserable office, - to obey, rebelling;
and worse yet, to hate with touch of pity! For in his eyes I read
some lurid woe would shrivel me up, had I it. Yet is there hope.
Time and tide flow wide. The hated whale has the round watery
world to swim in, as the small gold-fish has its glassy globe.
His heaven-insulting purpose, God may wedge aside. I would up
heart, were it not like lead. But my whole clock's run down; my
heart the all-controlling weight, I have no key to lift
again.
A burst of revelry from the forecastle
Oh, God! to sail with such a heathen crew that have small
touch of human mothers in them! Whelped somewhere by the sharkish
sea. The white whale is their demigorgon. Hark! the infernal
orgies! that revelry is forward! mark the unfaltering silence
aft! Methinks it pictures life. Foremost through the sparkling
sea shoots on the gay, embattled, bantering bow, but only to drag
dark Ahab after it, where he broods within his sternward cabin,
builded over the dead water of the wake, and further on, hunted by
its wolfish gurglings. The long howl thrills me through! Peace!
ye revellers, and set the watch! Oh, life! 'tis in an hour like
this, with soul beat down and held to knowledge, - as wild,
untutored things are forced to feed - Oh, life! 'tis now that I
do feel the latent horror in thee! but 'tis not me! that
horror's out of me! and with the soft feeling of the human in me,
yet will I try to fight ye, ye grim, phantom futures! Stand by
me, hold me, bind me, O ye blessed influences!
*x*
*x moby_039.html/Chapter xxxix - FIRST NIGHT-WATCH*
Fore-top Stubb solus, and mending a brace
Ha! ha! ha! ha! hem! clear my throat! - I've
been thinking over it ever since, and that ha, ha's the final
consequence. Why so? Because a laugh's the wisest, easiest
answer to all that's queer; and come what will, one comfort's
always left - that unfailing comfort is, it's all
predestinated. I heard not all his talk with Starbuck; but to my
poor eye Starbuck then looked something as I the other evening
felt. Be sure the old Mogul has fixed him, too. I twigged it,
knew it; had had the gift, might readily have prophesied it
- for when I clapped my eye upon his skull I saw it. Well,
Stubb, wise Stubb - that's my title - well, Stubb, what
of it, Stubb? Here's a carcase. I know not all that may be
coming, but be it what it will, I'll go to it laughing. Such a
waggish leering as lurks in all your horribles! I feel funny.
Fa, la! lirra, skirra! What's my juicy little pear at home doing
now? Crying its eyes out? - Giving a party to the last arrived
harpooneers, I dare say, gay as a frigate's pennant, and so am
I - fa, la! lirra, skirra! Oh -
"We'll drink to-night with hearts as light,
To love, as gay and fleeting
As bubbles that swim, on the beaker's brim,
And break on the lips while meeting."
A brave stave that - who calls? Mr. Starbuck? Aye, aye,
sir - (Aside) he's my superior, he has his too, if I'm
not mistaken. - Aye, aye, sir, just through with this job
- coming.
*x*
*x moby_040.html/Chapter xl - MIDNIGHT, FORECASTLE*
Harpooners and sailors
Foresail rises and discovers the watch standing, lounging,
leaning, and lying in various attitudes, all singing in
chorus
Farewell and adieu to you, Spanish ladies!
Farewell and adieu to you, ladies of Spain!
Our captain's commanded. -
1st Nantucket Sailor
Oh, boys, don't be sentimental; it's bad for the digestion!
Take a tonic, follow me!
Sings, and all follow
Our captain stood upon the deck,
A spy-glass in his hand,
A viewing of those gallant whales
That blew at every strand.
Oh, your tubs in your boats, my boys,
And by your braces stand,
And we'll have one of those fine whales,
Hand, boys, over hand!
So, be cheery, my lads! may your hearts never fail!
While the bold harpooneer is striking the whale!
Mate's Voice from the Quarter-Deck
Eight bells there, forward!
2nd Nantucket Sailor
Avast the chorus! Eight bells there! d'ye hear, bell-boy?
Strike the bell eight, thou Pip! thou blackling! and let me call
the watch. I've the sort of mouth for that - the hogshead
mouth. So, so, (thrusts his head down the scuttle),
Star - bo-l-e-e-n-s, a-h-o-y! Eight bells there below! Tumble
up!
Dutch Sailor
Grand snoozing to-night, maty; fat night for that. I mark
this in our old Mogul's wine; it's quite as deadening to some as
filliping to others. We sing; they sleep - aye, lie down there,
like ground-tier butts. At 'em again! There, take this copper-
pump, and hail 'em through it. Tell 'em to avast dreaming of
their lasses. Tell 'em it's the resurrection; they must kiss
their last, and come to judgment. That's the way -
that's it; thy throat ain't spoiled with eating Amsterdam
butter.
French Sailor
Hist, boys! let's have a jig or two before we ride to anchor
in Blanket Bay. What say ye? There comes the other watch. Stand
by all legs! Pip! little Pip! hurrah with your
tambourine!
Pip Sulky and sleepy
Don't know where it is.
French Sailor
Beat thy belly, then, and wag thy ears. Jig it, men, I say;
merry's the word; hurrah! Damn me, won't you dance? Form, now,
Indian-file, and gallop into the double-shuffle? Throw yourselves!
Legs! Legs!
Iceland Sailor
I don't like your floor, maty; it's too springy to my taste.
I'm used to ice-floors. I'm sorry to throw cold water on the
subject; but excuse me.
Maltese Sailor
Me too; where's your girls? Who but a fool would take his
left hand by his right, and say to himself, how d'ye do?
Partners! I must have partners!
Sicilian Sailor
Aye; girls and a green! - then I'll hop with ye; yea, turn
grasshopper!
Long-Island Sailor
Well, well, ye sulkies, there's plenty more of us. Hoe corn
when you may, I say. All legs go to harvest soon. Ah! here comes
the music; now for it!
Azore Sailor
Ascending, and pitching the tambourine up the
scuttle
Here you are, Pip; and there's the windlass-bitts; up you
mount! Now, boys!
The half of them dance to the tambourine; some go below;
some sleep or lie among the coils of rigging. Oaths a-
plenty
Azore Sailor Dancing
Go it, Pip! Bang it, bell-boy! Rig it, dig it, stig it,
quig it, bell-boy; Make fire-flies; break the jinglers!
Pip
Jinglers, you say? - there goes another, dropped off; I
pound it so.
China Sailor
Rattle thy teeth, then, and pound away; make a pagoda of
thyself.
French Sailor
Merry-mad! Hold up thy hoop, Pip, till I jump through it!
split jibs! tear yourselves!
Tashtego Quietly smoking
That's a white man; he calls that fun: humph! I save my
sweat.
Old Manx Sailor
I wonder whether those jolly lads bethink them of what they
are dancing over. I'll dance over your grave, I will - that's
the bitterest threat of your night-women, that beat head-winds
round corners. O Christ! to think of the green navies and the
green-skulled crews! Well, well; belike the whole world's a ball,
as you scholars have it; and so 'tis right to make one ballroom of
it. Dance on, lads, you're young; I was once.
3d Nantucket Sailor
Spell oh! - whew! this is worse than pulling after whales
in a calm - give us a whiff, Tash.
They cease dancing, and gather in clusters. Meantime the
sky darkens - the wind rises
Lascar Sailor
By Brahma! boys, it'll be douse sail soon. The sky-born,
high-tide Ganges turned to wind! Thou showest thy black brow,
Seeva!
Maltese Sailor Reclining and shaking his
cap
It's the waves - the snow's caps turn to jig it now.
They'll shake their tassels soon. Now would all the waves were
women, then I'd go drown, and chassee with them evermore! There's
naught so sweet on earth - heaven may not match it! - as those
swift glances of warm, wild bosoms in the dance, when the over-arboring
arms hide such ripe, bursting grapes.
Sicilian Sailor Reclining
Tell me not of it! Hark ye, lad - fleet interlacings of
the limbs - lithe swayings - coyings - flutterings! lip!
heart! hip! all graze: unceasing touch and go! not taste,
observe ye, else come satiety. Eh, Pagan? (Nudging.)
Tahitan Sailor Reclining on a mat
Hail, holy nakedness of our dancing girls! - the Heeva-Heeva!
Ah! low veiled, high palmed Tahiti! I still rest me on
thy mat, but the soft soil has slid! I saw thee woven in the
wood, my mat! green the first day i brought ye thence; now worn
and wilted quite. Ah me! - not thou nor I can bear the change!
How then, if so be transplanted to yon sky? Hear I the roaring
streams from Pirohitee's peak of spears, when they leap down the
crags and drown the villages? - The blast! the blast! Up,
spine, and meet it! (Leaps to his feet.)
Portuguese Sailor
How the sea rolls swashing 'gainst the side! Stand by for
reefing, hearties! the winds are just crossing swords, pell-mell
they'll go lunging presently.
Danish Sailor
Crack, crack, old ship! so long as thou crackest, thou
holdest! Well done! The mate there holds ye to it stiffly. He's
no more
afraid than the isle fort at Cattegat, put there to fight the
Baltic with storm-lashed guns, on which the sea-salt cakes!
4th Nantucket Sailor
He has his orders, mind ye that. I heard old Ahab tell him
he must always kill a squall, something as they burst a waterspout
with a pistol - fire your ship right into it!
English Sailor
Blood! but that old man's a grand old cove! We are the lads
to hunt him up his whale!
All
Aye! aye!
Old Manx Sailor
How the three pines shake! Pines are the hardest sort of
tree to live when shifted to any other soil, and here there's none
but the crew's cursed clay. Steady, helmsman! steady. This is
the sort of weather when brave hearts snap ashore, and keeled
hulls split at sea. Our captain has his birth-mark; look yonder,
boys, there's another in the sky - lurid-like, ye see, all else
pitch black.
Daggoo
What of that? Who's afraid of black's afraid of me! I'm
quarried out of it!
Spanish Sailor
(Aside.) He wants to bully, ah! - the old grudge
makes me touchy. (Advancing.) Aye, harpooneer, thy race is
the undeniable dark side of mankind - devilish dark at that. No
offence.
DaggooGrimly
None.
St. Jago's Sailor
That Spaniard's mad or drunk. But that can't be, or else in
his one case our old Mogul's fire-waters are somewhat long in
working.
5th Nantucket Sailor
What's that I saw - lightning? Yes.
Spanish Sailor
No; Daggoo showing his teeth.
DaggooSpringing
Swallow thine, mannikin! White skin, white liver!
Spanish Sailor Meeting him
Knife thee heartily! big frame, small spirit!
All
A row! a row! a row!
Tashtego With a whiff
A row a'low, and a row aloft - Gods and men - both
brawlers! Humph!
Belfast Sailor
A row! arrah a row! The Virgin be blessed, a row! Plunge
in with ye!
English Sailor
Fair play! Snatch the Spaniard's knife! A ring, a
ring!
Old Manx Sailor
Ready formed. There! the ringed
horizon. In that ring Cain struck Abel. Sweet work, right work!
No? Why then, God, mad'st thou the ring?
Mate's Voice from the Quarter Deck
Hands by the halyards! in top-gallant sails! Stand by to
reef topsails!
All
The squall! the squall! jump, my jollies! (They
scatter.)
Pip Shrinking under the windlass
Jollies? Lord help such jollies! Crish, crash! there goes
the jib-stay! Blang-whang! God! Duck lower, Pip, here comes the
royal yard! It's worse than being in the whirled woods, the last
day of the year; Who'd go climbing after chestnuts now? But there
they go, all cursing, and here I don't. Fine prospects to 'em;
they're on the road to heaven. Hold on hard! Jimmini, what a
squall! But those chaps there are worse yet - they are your
white squalls, they. White squalls? white whale, shirr!
shirr! Here have I heard all their chat just now, and the white
whale - shirr! shirr! - but spoken of once! and only this
evening - it makes me jingle all over like my tambourine
- that anaconda of an old man swore 'em in to hunt him! Oh,
thou big white God aloft there somewhere in yon darkness, have
mercy on this small black boy down here; preserve him from all men
that have no bowels to feel fear!
*x*
*x moby_041.html/Chapter xli - MOBY DICK*
I, Ishmael, was one of that crew; my shouts had gone
up with the rest; my oath had been welded with theirs; and stronger
I shouted, and more did I hammer and clinch my oath, because of the
dread in my soul. A wild, mystical, sympathetical feeling was in
me; Ahab's quenchless feud seemed mine. With greedy ears I
learned the history of that murderous monster against whom I and
all the others had taken our oaths of violence and revenge.
For some time past, though at intervals only, the
unaccompanied, secluded White Whale had haunted those uncivilized
seas mostly frequented by the Sperm Whale fishermen. But not all
of them knew of his existence; only a few of them, comparatively,
had knowingly seen him; while the number who as yet had actually
and knowingly given battle to him, was small indeed. For, owing
to the large number of whale-cruisers; the disorderly way they
were sprinkled over the entire watery circumference, many of them
adventurously pushing their quest along solitary latitudes, so as
seldom or never for a whole twelvemonth or more on a stretch, to
encounter a single news-telling sail of any sort; the inordinate
length of each separate voyage; the irregularity of the times of
sailing from home; all these, with other circumstances, direct and
indirect, long obstructed
the spread through the whole world-wide whaling-fleet of the
special individualizing tidings concerning Moby Dick. It was
hardly to be doubted, that several vessels reported to have
encountered, at such or such a time, or on such or such a
meridian, a Sperm Whale of uncommon magnitude and malignity, which
whale, after doing great mischief to his assailants, had
completely escaped them; to some minds it was not an unfair
presumption, I say, that the whale in question must have been no
other than moby Dick. Yet as of late the Sperm Whale fishery had
been marked by various and not unfrequent instances of great
ferocity, cunning, and malice in the monster attacked; therefore
it was, that those who by accident ignorantly gave battle to Moby
Dick; such hunters, perhaps, for the most part, were content to
ascribe the peculiar terror he bred, more, as it were, to the
perils of the Sperm Whale fishery at large, than to the individual
cause. In that way, mostly, the disastrous encounter between Ahab
and the whale had hitherto been popularly regarded.
And as for those who, previously hearing of the White Whale,
by chance caught sight of him; in the beginning of the thing they
had every one of them, almost, as boldly and fearlessly lowered
for him, as for any other whale of that species. But at length,
such calamities did ensue in these assaults - not restricted to
sprained wrists and ancles, broken limbs, or devouring amputations
- but fatal to the last degree of fatality; those repeated
disastrous repulses, all accumulating and piling their terrors upon
Moby Dick; those things had gone far to shake the fortitude of many
brave hunters, to whom the story of the White Whale had eventually
come.
Nor did wild rumors of all sorts fail to
exaggerate, and still the more horrify the true histories of these
deadly encounters. For not only do fabulous rumors naturally grow
out of the very body of all surprising terrible events, - as the
smitten tree gives birth to its fungi; but, in maritime life, far
more than in that of terra firma, wild rumors abound, wherever
there is any adequate reality for them to cling to. And as the
sea surpasses the land in this matter, so the whale fishery
surpasses every other sort of maritime life, in the wonderfulness
and fearfulness of the
rumors which sometimes circulate there. For not only are whalemen
as a body unexempt from that ignorance and superstitiousness
hereditary to all sailors; but of all sailors, they are by all
odds the most directly brought into contact with whatever is
appallingly astonishing in the sea; face to face they not only eye
its greatest marvels, but, hand to jaw, give battle to them.
Alone, in such remotest waters, that though you sailed a thousand
miles, and passed a thousand shores, you would not come to any
chiselled hearthstone, or aught hospitable beneath that part of
the sun; in such latitudes and longitudes, pursuing too such a
calling as he does, the whaleman is wrapped by influences all
tending to make his fancy pregnant with many a mighty
birth.
No wonder, then, that ever gathering volume
from the mere transit over the widest watery spaces, the outblown
rumors of the White Whale did in the end incorporate with
themselves all manner of morbid hints, and half-formed foetal
suggestions of supernatural agencies, which eventually invested
Moby Dick with new terrors unborrowed from anything that visibly
appears. So that in many cases such a panic did he finally strike,
that few who by those rumors, at least, had heard of the White
Whale, few of those hunters were willing to encounter the perils
of his jaw.
But there were still other and more
vital practical influences at work. Not even at the present day
has the original prestige of the Sperm Whale, as fearfully
distinguished from all other species of the leviathan, died out of
the minds of the whalemen as a body. There are those this day
among them, who, though intelligent and courageous enough in
offering battle to the Greenland or Right Whale, would perhaps
- either from professional inexperience, or incompetency, or
timidity, decline a contest with the Sperm Whale; at any rate,
there are plenty of whalemen, especially among those whaling
nations not sailing under the American flag, who have never
hostilely encountered the Sperm Whale, but whose sole knowledge of
the leviathan is restricted to the ignoble monster primitively
pursued in the North; seated on their hatches, these men will
hearken with a childish fire-side interest and awe, to the wild,
strange tales of
Southern whaling. Nor is the pre-eminent tremendousness of the
great Sperm Whale anywhere more feelingly comprehended, than on
board of those prows which stem him.
And as if the
now tested reality of his might had in former legendary times
thrown its shadow before it; we find some book naturalists
- Olassen and Povelson - declaring the Sperm Whale not only to
be a consternation to every other creature in the sea, but also to
be so incredibly ferocious as continually to be athirst for human
blood. Nor even down to so late a time as Cuvier's, were these or
almost similar impressions effaced. For in his Natural History,
the Baron himself affirms that at sight of the Sperm Whale, all
fish (sharks included) are "struck with the most lively
terrors", and "often in the precipitancy of their flight dash
themselves against the rocks with such violence as to cause
instantaneous death". And however the general experiences in
the fishery may amend such reports as these; yet in their full
terribleness, even to the bloodthirsty item of Povelson, the
superstitious belief in them is, in some vicissitudes of their
vocation, revived in the minds of the hunters.
So
that overawed by the rumors and portents concerning him, not a few
of the fishermen recalled, in reference to Moby Dick, the earlier
days of the Sperm Whale fishery, when it was oftentimes hard to
induce long practised Right whalemen to embark in the perils of
this new and daring warfare; such men protesting that although
other leviathans might be hopefully pursued, yet to chase and point
lance at such an apparition as the Sperm Whale was not for mortal
man. That to attempt it, would be inevitably to be torn into a
quick eternity. on this head, there are some remarkable documents
that may be consulted.
Nevertheless, some there
were, who even in the face of these things were ready to give chase
to Moby Dick; and a still greater number who, chancing only to
hear of him distantly and vaguely, without the specific details of
any certain calamity, and without superstitious accompaniments,
were sufficiently hardy not to flee from the battle if
offered.
One of the wild suggestings referred to, as
at last coming to be linked with the White Whale in the minds of
the superstitiously inclined, was the unearthly conceit that Moby
Dick was
ubiquitous; that he had actually been encountered in opposite
latitudes at one and the same instant of time.
Nor,
credulous as such minds must have been, was this conceit
altogether without some faint show of superstitious probability.
For as the secrets of the currents in the seas have never yet been
divulged, even to the most erudite research; so the hidden ways of
the Sperm Whale when beneath the surface remain, in great part,
unaccountable to his pursuers; and from time to time have
originated the most curious and contradictory speculations
regarding them, especially concerning the mystic modes whereby,
after sounding to a great depth, he transports himself with such
vast swiftness to the most widely distant points.
It
is a thing well known to both American and English whale-ships,
and as well a thing placed upon authoritative record years ago by
Scoresby, that some whales have been captured far north in the
Pacific, in whose bodies have been found the barbs of harpoons
darted in the Greenland seas. Nor is it to be gainsaid, that in
some of these instances it has been declared that the interval of
time between the two assaults could not have exceeded very many
days. Hence, by inference, it has been believed by some whalemen,
that the nor' west passage, so long a problem to man, was never a
problem to the whale. So that here, in the real living experience
of living men, the prodigies related in old times of the inland
Strello mountain in Portugal (near whose top there was said to be
a lake in which the wrecks of ships floated up to the surface);
and that still more wonderful story of the Arethusa fountain near
Syracuse (whose waters were believed to have come from the Holy
Land by an underground passage); these fabulous narrations are
almost fully equalled by the realities of the whaleman.
Forced into familiarity, then, with such prodigies as these;
and knowing that after repeated, intrepid assaults, the White
Whale had escaped alive; it cannot be much matter of surprise that
some whalemen should go still further in their superstitions;
declaring Moby Dick not only ubiquitous, but immortal (for
immortality is but ubiquity in time); that though groves of spears
should be planted in his flanks, he would still swim away unharmed;
or if indeed he should ever be made to spout thick
blood, such a sight would be but a ghastly deception; for again in
unensanguined billows hundreds of leagues away, his unsullied jet
would once more be seen.
But even stripped of these
supernatural surmisings, there was enough in the earthly make and
incontestable character of the monster to strike the imagination
with unwonted power. For, it was not so much his uncommon bulk
that so much distinguished him from other Sperm Whales, but, as
was elsewhere thrown out - a peculiar snow-white wrinkled
forehead, and a high, pyramidical white hump. These were his
prominent features; the tokens whereby, even in the limitless,
uncharted seas, he revealed his identity, at a long distance, to
those who knew him.
The rest of his body was so
streaked, and spotted, and marbled with the same shrouded hue,
that, in the end, he had gained his distinctive appellation of the
White Whale; a name, indeed, literally justified by his vivid
aspect, when seen gliding at high noon through a dark blue sea,
leaving a milky-way wake of creamy foam, all spangled with golden
gleamings.
Nor was it his unwonted magnitude, nor his
remarkable hue, nor yet his deformed lower jaw, that so much
invested the whale with natural terror, as that unexampled,
intelligent malignity which, according to specific accounts, he
had over and over again evinced in his assaults. More than all,
his treacherous retreats struck more of dismay than perhaps aught
else. For, when swimming before his exulting pursuers, with every
apparent symptom of alarm, he had several times been known to turn
around suddenly, and, bearing down upon them, either stave their
boats to splinters, or drive them back in consternation to their
ship.
Already several fatalities had attended his
chase. But though similar disasters, however little bruited
ashore, were by no means unusual in the fishery; yet, in most
instances, such seemed the White Whale's infernal aforethought of
ferocity, that every dismembering or death that he caused, was not
wholly regarded as having been inflicted by an unintelligent
agent.
Judge, then, to what pitches of inflamed,
distracted fury the
minds of his more desperate hunters were impelled, when amid the
chips of chewed boats, and the sinking limbs of torn comrades,
they swam out of the white curds of the whale's direful wrath into
the serene, exasperating sunlight, that smiled on, as if at a
birth or a bridal.
His three boats stove around him,
and oars and men both whirling in the eddies; one captain, seizing
the line-knife from his broken prow, had dashed at the whale, as an
Arkansas duellist at his foe, blindly seeking with a six inch blade
to reach the fathom-deep life of the whale. That captain was
Ahab. And then it was, that suddenly sweeping his sickle-shaped
lower jaw beneath him, Moby Dick had reaped away Ahab's leg, as a
mower a blade of grass in the field. No turbaned Turk, no hired
Venetian or Malay, could have smote him with more seeming malice.
Small reason was there to doubt, then, that ever since that almost
fatal encounter, Ahab had cherished a wild vindictiveness against
the whale, all the more fell for that in his frantic morbidness he
at last came to identify with him, not only all his bodily woes,
but all his intellectual and spiritual exasperations. The White
Whale swam before him as the monomaniac incarnation of all those
malicious agencies which some deep men feel eating in them, till
they are left living on with half a heart and half a lung. That
intangible malignity which has been from the beginning; to whose
dominion even the modern Christians ascribe one-half of the
worlds; which the ancient Ophites of the east reverenced in their
statue devil; - Ahab did not fall down and worship it like
them; but deliriously transferring its idea to the abhorred White
Whale, he pitted himself, all mutilated, against it. All that
most maddens and torments; all that stirs up the lees of things;
all truth with malice in it; all that cracks the sinews and cakes
the brain; all the subtle demonisms of life and thought; all evil,
to crazy Ahab, were visibly personified, and made practically
assailable in Moby Dick. He piled upon the whale's white hump the
sum of all the general rage and hate felt by his whole race from
Adam down; and then, as if his chest had been a mortar, he burst
his hot heart's shell upon it.
It is not probable that this monomania in him took its instant rise
at the precise time of his bodily dismemberment. Then, in darting
at the monster, knife in hand, he had but given loose to a sudden,
passionate, corporal animosity; and when he received the stroke
that tore him, he probably but felt the agonizing bodily
laceration, but nothing more. Yet, when by this collision forced
to turn towards home, and for long months of days and weeks, Ahab
and anguish lay stretched together in one hammock, rounding in mid
winter that dreary, howling Patagonian Cape; then it was, that his
torn body and gashed soul bled into one another; and so
interfusing, made him mad. That it was only then, on the homeward
voyage, after the encounter, that the final monomania seized him,
seems all but certain from the fact that, at intervals during the
passage, he was a raving lunatic; and, though unlimbed of a leg,
yet such vital strength yet lurked in his Egyptian chest, and was
moreover intensified by his delirium, that his mates were forced to
lace him fast, even there, as he sailed, raving in his hammock.
In a strait-jacket, he swung to the mad rockings of the gales.
And, when running into more sufferable latitudes, the ship, with
mild stun'sails spread, floated across the tranquil tropics, and,
to all appearances, the old man's delirium seemed left behind him
with the Cape Horn swells, and he came forth from his dark den
into the blessed light and air; even then, when he bore that firm,
collected front, however pale, and issued his calm orders once
again; and his mates thanked God the direful madness was now gone;
even then, Ahab, in his hidden self, raved on. Human madness is
oftentimes a cunning and most feline thing. When you think it
fled, it may have but become transfigured into some still subtler
form. Ahab's full lunacy subsided not, but deepeningly contracted;
like the unabated Hudson, when that noble Northman flows narrowly,
but unfathomably through the Highland gorge. But, as in his
narrow-flowing monomania, not one jot of Ahab's broad madness had
been left behind; so in that broad madness, not one jot of his
great natural intellect had perished. That before living agent,
now became the living instrument. If such a furious trope may
stand, his special lunacy
stormed his general sanity, and carried it, and turned all its
concentred cannon upon its own mad mark; so that far from having
lost his strength, Ahab, to that one end, did now possess a
thousand fold more potency than ever he had sanely brought to bear
upon any one reasonable object.
This is much; yet
Ahab's larger, darker, deeper part remains unhinted. But vain to
popularize profundities, and all truth is profound. Winding far
down from within the very heart of this spiked Hotel de Cluny
where we here stand - however grand and wonderful, now quit it;
- and take your way, ye nobler, sadder souls, to those vast
Roman halls of Thermes; where far beneath the fantastic towers of
man's upper earth, his root of grandeur, his whole awful essence
sits in bearded state; an antique buried beneath antiquities, and
throned on torsoes! So with a broken throne, the great gods mock
that captive king; so like a Caryatid, he patient sits, upholding
on his frozen brow the piled entablatures of ages. Wind ye down
there, ye prouder, sadder souls! question that proud, sad king!
A family likeness! aye, he did beget ye, ye young exiled
royalties; and from your grim sire only will the old State-secret
come.
Now, in his heart, Ahab had some glimpse of
this, namely: all my means are sane, my motive and my object mad.
Yet without power to kill, or change, or shun the fact; he
likewise knew that to mankind he did now long dissemble; in some
sort, did still. But that thing of his dissembling was only
subject to his perceptibility, not to his will determinate.
Nevertheless, so well did he succeed in that dissembling, that
when with ivory leg he stepped ashore at last, no Nantucketer
thought him otherwise than but naturally grieved, and that to the
quick, with the terrible casualty which had overtaken him.
The report of his undeniable delirium at sea was likewise
popularly ascribed to a kindred cause. And so too, all the added
moodiness which always afterwards, to the very day of sailing in
the pequod on the present voyage, sat brooding on his brow. Nor is
it so very unlikely, that far from distrusting his fitness for
another whaling voyage, on account of such dark symptoms, the
calculating people of that prudent isle were inclined to
harbor the conceit, that for those very reasons he was all the
better qualified and set on edge, for a pursuit so full of rage
and wildness as the bloody hunt of whales. Gnawed within and
scorched without, with the infixed, unrelenting fangs of some
incurable idea; such an one, could he be found, would seem the
very man to dart his iron and lift his lance against the most
appalling of all brutes. Or, if for any reason thought to be
corporeally incapacitated for that, yet such an one would seem
superlatively competent to cheer and howl on his underlings to the
attack. But be all this as it may, certain it is, that with the
mad secret of his unabated rage bolted up and keyed in him, Ahab
had purposely sailed upon the present voyage with the one only and
all-engrossing object of hunting the White Whale. Had any one of
his old acquaintances on shore but half dreamed of what was lurking
in him then, how soon would their aghast and righteous souls have
wrenched the ship from such a fiendish man! They were bent on
profitable cruises, the profit to be counted down in dollars from
the mint. He was intent on an audacious, immitigable, and
supernatural revenge.
Here, then, was this grey-
headed, ungodly old man, chasing with curses a Job's whale round
the world, at the head of a crew, too, chiefly made up of mongrel
renegades, and castaways, and cannibals - morally enfeebled
also, by the incompetence of mere unaided virtue or right-
mindedness in Starbuck, the invulnerable jollity of indifference
and recklessness in Stubb, and the pervading mediocrity in Flask.
Such a crew, so officered, seemed specially picked and packed by
some infernal fatality to help him to his monomaniac revenge. How
it was that they so aboundingly responded to the old man's ire
- by what evil magic their souls were possessed, that at times
his hate seemed almost theirs; the White Whale as much their
insufferable foe as his; how all this came to be - what the
White Whale was to them, or how to their unconscious
understandings, also, in some dim, unsuspected way, he might have
seemed the gliding great demon of the seas of life, - all this
to explain, would be to dive deeper than Ishmael can go. The
subterranean miner that works in us all, how can one tell whither
leads his shaft by the ever shifting, muffled sound of his pick?
Who does not feel the
irresistible arm drag? What skiff in tow of a seventy-four can
stand still? For one, I gave myself up to the abandonment of the
time and the place; but while yet all a-rush to encounter the
whale, could see naught in that brute but the deadliest
ill.
*x*
*x moby_042.html/Chapter xlii - THE WHITENESS OF THE WHALE*
What the White Whale was to Ahab, has been hinted;
what, at times, he was to me, as yet remains unsaid.
Aside from those more obvious considerations touching Moby
Dick, which could not but occasionally awaken in any man's soul
some alarm, there was another thought, or rather vague, nameless
horror concerning him, which at times by its intensity completely
overpowered all the rest; and yet so mystical and well nigh
ineffable was it, that I almost despair of putting it in a
comprehensible form. It was the whiteness of the whale that above
all things appalled me. But how can I hope to explain myself
here; and yet, in some dim, random way, explain myself I must,
else all these chapters might be naught.
Though in
many natural objects, whiteness refiningly enhances beauty, as if
imparting some special virtue of its own, as in marbles,
japonicas, and pearls; and though various nations have in some way
recognised a certain royal pre-eminence in this hue; even the
barbaric, grand old kings of Pegu placing the title "Lord of
the White Elephants" above all their other magniloquent
ascriptions of dominion; and the modern kings of Siam unfurling
the same snow-white quadruped in the royal standard; and the
Hanoverian flag bearing the one figure of a snow-white charger;
and the great Austrian Empire, Caesarian, heir to overlording
Rome, having for the imperial color the same imperial hue; and
though this pre-eminence in it applies to the human race itself,
giving the white man ideal mastership over every dusky tribe; and
though, besides all this, whiteness has been
even made significant of gladness, for among the Romans a white
stone marked a joyful day; and though in other mortal sympathies
and symbolizings, this same hue is made the emblem of many
touching, noble things - the innocence of brides, the benignity
of age; though among the Red Men of America the giving of the
white belt of wampum was the deepest pledge of honor; though in
many climes, whiteness typifies the majesty of Justice in the
ermine of the Judge, and contributes to the daily state of kings
and queens drawn by milk-white steeds; though even in the higher
mysteries of the most august religions it has been made the symbol
of the divine spotlessness and power; by the Persian fire
worshippers, the white forked flame being held the holiest on the
altar; and in the Greek mythologies, Great Jove himself made
incarnate in a snow-white bull; and though to the noble Iroquois,
the midwinter sacrifice of the sacred White Dog was by far the
holiest festival of their theology, that spotless, faithful
creature being held the purest envoy they could send to the Great
Spirit with the annual tidings of their own fidelity; and though
directly from the Latin word for white, all Christian priests
derive the name of one part of their sacred vesture, the alb or
tunic, worn beneath the cassock; and though among the holy pomps
of the Romish faith, white is specially employed in the
celebration of the Passion of our Lord; though in the Vision of
St. John, white robes are given to the redeemed, and the four-
and-twenty elders stand clothed in white before the great white
throne, and the Holy One that sitteth there white like wool; yet
for all these accumulated associations, with whatever is sweet,
and honorable, and sublime, there yet lurks an elusive something
in the innermost idea of this hue, which strikes more of panic to
the soul than that redness which affrights in blood.
This elusive quality it is, which causes the thought of
whiteness, when divorced from more kindly associations, and
coupled with any object terrible in itself, to heighten that
terror to the furthest bounds. Witness the white bear of the
poles, and the white shark of the tropics; what but their smooth,
flaky whiteness makes them the transcendent horrors they are? That
ghastly whiteness it is which imparts such an abhorrent mildness,
even
more loathsome than terrific, to the dumb gloating of their aspect.
So that not the fierce-fanged tiger in his heraldic coat can so
stagger courage as the white-shrouded bear or shark.
Bethink thee of the albatross, whence come those clouds of
spiritual wonderment and pale dread, in which that white phantom
sails in all imaginations? Not Coleridge first threw that spell;
but God's great, unflattering laureate, Nature.
Most famous in our Western annals and Indian traditions is
that of the White Steed of the Prairies; a magnificent milk-white
charger, large-eyed, small-headed, bluff-chested, and with the
dignity of a thousand monarchs in his lofty, overscorning
carriage. He was the elected Xerxes of vast herds of wild horses,
whose pastures in those days were only fenced by the Rocky
Mountains and the Alleghanies. At their flaming head he westward
trooped it like that chosen star which every evening leads on the
hosts of light. The flashing cascade of his mane, the curving
comet of his tail, invested him with housings more resplendent
than gold and silver-beaters could have furnished him. A most
imperial and archangelical apparition of that unfallen, western
world, which to the eyes of the old trappers and hunters revived
the glories of those primeval times when Adam walked majestic as
a god, bluff-bowed and fearless as this mighty steed. Whether
marching amid his aides and marshals in the van of countless
cohorts that endlessly streamed it over the plains, like an Ohio;
or whether with his circumambient subjects browsing all around at
the horizon, the White Steed gallopingly reviewed them with warm
nostrils reddening through his cool milkiness; in whatever aspect
he presented himself, always to the bravest Indians he was the
object of trembling reverence and awe. Nor can it be questioned
from what stands on legendary record of
this noble horse, that it was his spiritual whiteness chiefly,
which so clothed him with divineness; and that this divineness had
that in it which, though commanding worship, at the same time
enforced a certain nameless terror.
But there are
other instances where this whiteness loses all that accessory and
strange glory which invests it in the White Steed and
Albatross.
What is it that in the Albino man so
peculiarly repels and often shocks the eye, as that sometimes he
is loathed by his own kith and kin! It is that whiteness which
invests him, a thing expressed by the name he bears. The Albino
is as well made as other men - has no substantive deformity
- and yet this mere aspect of all-pervading whiteness makes him
more strangely hideous than the ugliest abortion. Why should this
be so?
Nor, in quite other aspects, does Nature in
her least palpable but not the less malicious agencies, fail to
enlist among her forces this crowning attribute of the terrible.
From its snowy aspect, the gauntleted ghost of the Southern Seas
has been denominated the White Squall. Nor, in some historic
instances, has the art of human malice omitted so potent an
auxiliary. How wildly it heightens the effect of that passage in
Froissart, when, masked in the snowy symbol of their faction, the
desperate White Hoods of Ghent murder their bailiff in the market-
place!
Nor, in some things, does the common,
hereditary experience of all mankind fail to bear witness to the
supernaturalism of this hue. It cannot well be doubted, that the
one visible quality in the aspect of the dead which most appals
the gazer, is the marble pallor lingering there; as if indeed that
pallor were as much like the badge of consternation in the other
world, as of mortal trepidation here. And from that pallor of the
dead, we borrow the expressive hue of the shroud in which we wrap
them. Nor even in our superstitions do we fail to throw the same
snowy mantle round our phantoms; all ghosts rising in a milk-white
fog - Yea, while these terrors seize us, let us add, that even
the king of terrors, when personified by the evangelist, rides on
his pallid horse.
Therefore, in his other moods,
symbolize whatever grand or
gracious thing he will by whiteness, no man can deny that in its
profoundest idealized significance it calls up a peculiar
apparition to the soul.
But though without dissent
this point be fixed, how is mortal man to account for it? To
analyse it, would seem impossible. Can we, then, by the citation
of some of those instances wherein this thing of whiteness
- though for the time either wholly or in great part stripped of
all direct associations calculated to impart to it aught fearful,
but, nevertheless, is found to exert over us the same sorcery,
however modified; - can we thus hope to light upon some chance
clue to conduct us to the hidden cause we seek?
Let
us try. But in a matter like this, subtlety appeals to subtlety,
and without imagination no man can follow another into these
halls. And though, doubtless, some at least of the imaginative
impressions about to be presented may have been shared by most
men, yet few perhaps were entirely conscious of them at the time,
and therefore may not be able to recall them now.
Why to the man of untutored ideality, who happens to be but
loosely acquainted with the peculiar character of the day, does
the bare mention of Whitsuntide marshal in the fancy such long,
dreary, speechless processions of slow-pacing pilgrims, downcast
and hooded with new-fallen snow? Or, to the unread,
unsophisticated Protestant of the Middle American States, why does
the passing mention of a White Friar or a White Nun, evoke such an
eyeless statue in the soul?
Or what is there apart
from the traditions of dungeoned warriors and kings (which will
not wholly account for it) that makes the White Tower of London
tell so much more strongly on the imagination of an untravelled
American, than those other storied structures, its neighbors
- the Byward Tower, or even the Bloody? And those sublimer
towers, the White Mountains of New Hampshire, whence, in peculiar
moods, comes that gigantic ghostliness over the soul at the bare
mention of that name, while the thought of Virginia's Blue Ridge is
full of a soft, dewy, distant dreaminess? Or why, irrespective of
all latitudes and longitudes, does the name of the White Sea exert
such a spectralness
over the fancy, while that of the Yellow Sea lulls us with mortal
thoughts of long lacquered mild afternoons on the waves, followed
by the gaudiest and yet sleepiest of sunsets? Or, to choose a
wholly unsubstantial instance, purely addressed to the fancy, why,
in reading the old fairy tales of Central Europe, does "the
tall pale man" of the Hartz forests, whose changeless pallor
unrestingly glides through the green of the groves - why is this
phantom more terrible than all the whooping imps of the
Blocksburg?
Nor is it, altogether, the remembrance
of her cathedral-toppling earthquakes; nor the stampedoes of her
frantic seas: nor the tearlessness of arid skies that never rain;
nor the sight of her wide field of leaning spires, wrenched cope-
stones, and crosses all adroop (like canted yards of anchored
fleets); and her suburban avenues of house-walls lying over upon
each other, as a tossed pack of cards; - it is not these things
alone which make tearless Lima, the strangest, saddest city thou
can'st see. For Lima has taken the white veil; and there is a
higher horror in this whiteness of her woe. Old as Pizarro, this
whiteness keeps her ruins for ever new; admits not the cheerful
greenness of complete decay; spreads over her broken ramparts the
rigid pallor of an apoplexy that fixes its own distortions.
I know that, to the common apprehension, this phenomenon of
whiteness is not confessed to be the prime agent in exaggerating
the terror of objects otherwise terrible; nor to the unimaginative
mind is there aught of terror in those appearances whose awfulness
to another mind almost solely consists in this one phenomenon,
especially when exhibited under any form at all approaching to
muteness or universality. What I mean by these two statements may
perhaps be respectively elucidated by the following
examples.
First: The mariner, when drawing nigh the
coasts of foreign lands, if by night he hear the roar of breakers,
starts to vigilance, and feels just enough of trepidation to
sharpen all his faculties; but under precisely similar
circumstances, let him be called from his hammock to view his ship
sailing through a midnight sea of milky whiteness - as if from
encircling headlands shoals of combed white bears were swimming
round him, then he feels
a silent, superstitious dread; the shrouded phantom of the whitened
waters is horrible to him as a real ghost; in vain the lead
assures him he is still off soundings; heart and helm they both go
down; he never rests till blue water is under him again. Yet
where is the mariner who will tell thee, "Sir, it was not so
much the fear of striking hidden rocks, as the fear of that hideous
whiteness that so stirred me?"
Second: To the
native Indian of Peru, the continual sight of the snow-howdahed
Andes conveys naught of dread, except, perhaps, in the mere
fancying of the eternal frosted desolateness reigning at such vast
altitudes, and the natural conceit of what a fearfulness it would
be to lose oneself in such inhuman solitudes. Much the same is it
with the backwoodsman of the West, who with comparative
indifference views an unbounded prairie sheeted with driven snow,
no shadow of tree or twig to break the fixed trance of whiteness.
Not so the sailor, beholding the scenery of the Antarctic seas;
where at times, by some infernal trick of legerdemain in the
powers of frost and air, he, shivering and half shipwrecked,
instead of rainbows speaking hope and solace to his misery, views
what seems a boundless church-yard grinning upon him with its lean
ice monuments and splintered crosses.
But thou
sayest, methinks this white-lead chapter about whiteness is but a
white flag hung out from a craven soul; thou surrenderest to a
hypo, Ishmael.
Tell me, why this strong young colt,
foaled in some peaceful valley of Vermont, far removed from all
beasts of prey - why is it that upon the sunniest day, if you
but shake a fresh buffalo robe behind him, so that he cannot even
see it, but only smells its wild animal muskiness - why will he
start, snort, and with bursting eyes paw the ground in phrensies
of affright? There is no remembrance in him of any gorings of wild
creatures in his green northern home, so that the strange muskiness
he smells cannot recall to him anything associated with the
experience of former perils; for what knows he, this New England
colt, of the black bisons of distant Oregon?
No: but
here thou beholdest even in a dumb brute, the instinct of the
knowledge of the demonism in the world. Though
thousands of miles from Oregon, still when he smells that savage
musk, the rending, goring bison herds are as present as to the
deserted wild foal of the prairies, which this instant they may be
trampling into dust.
Thus, then, the muffled
rollings of a milky sea; the bleak rustlings of the festooned
frosts of mountains; the desolate shiftings of the windrowed snows
of prairies; all these, to Ishmael, are as the shaking of that
buffalo robe to the frightened colt!
Though neither
knows where lie the nameless things of which the mystic sign gives
forth such hints; yet with me, as with the colt, somewhere those
things must exist. Though in many of its aspects this visible
world seems formed in love, the invisible spheres were formed in
fright.
But not yet have we solved the incantation
of this whiteness, and learned why it appeals with such power to
the soul; and more strange and far more portentous - why, as we
have seen, it is at once the most meaning symbol of spiritual
things, nay, the very veil of the Christian's Deity; and yet should
be as it is, the intensifying agent in things the most appalling
to mankind.
Is it that by its indefiniteness it
shadows forth the heartless voids and immensities of the universe,
and thus stabs us from behind with the thought of annihilation,
when beholding the white depths of the milky way? Or is it, that
as in essence whiteness is not so much a color as the visible
absence of color, and at the same time the concrete of all colors;
is it for these reasons that there is such a dumb blankness, full
of meaning, in a wide landscape of snows - a colorless, all-
color of atheism from which we shrink? And when we consider that
other theory of the natural philosophers, that all other earthly
hues - every stately or lovely emblazoning - the sweet tinges
of sunset skies and woods; yea, and the gilded velvets of
butterflies, and the butterfly cheeks of young girls; all these
are but subtile deceits, not actually inherent in substances, but
only laid on from without; so that all deified Nature absolutely
paints like the harlot, whose allurements cover nothing but the
charnel-house within; and when we proceed further, and consider
that the mystical cosmetic which produces every one of her hues,
the great principle of light, for ever remains white or colorless
in itself, and if
operating without medium upon matter, would touch all objects, even
tulips and roses, with its own blank tinge - pondering all this,
the palsied universe lies before us a leper; and like wilful
travellers in Lapland, who refuse to wear colored and coloring
glasses upon their eyes, so the wretched infidel gazes himself
blind at the monumental white shroud that wraps all the prospect
around him. And of all these things the Albino Whale was the
symbol. Wonder ye then at the fiery hunt?
"Hist! Did you hear that noise,
Cabaco?"
It was the middle-watch; a fair
moonlight; the seamen were standing in a cordon, extending from
one of the fresh-water butts in the waist, to the scuttle-butt
near the taffrail. In this manner, they passed the buckets to
fill the scuttle-butt. Standing, for the most part, on the
hallowed precincts of the quarter-deck, they were careful not to
speak or rustle their feet. From hand to hand, the buckets went in
the deepest silence, only broken by the occasional flap of a sail,
and the steady hum of the unceasingly advancing keel.
It was in the midst of this repose, that Archy, one of the
cordon, whose post was near the after-hatches, whispered to his
neighbor, a Cholo, the words above.
"Hist! did
you hear that noise, Cabaco?"
"Take the
bucket, will ye, Archy? what noise d'ye mean?"
"There it is again - under the hatches - don't you
hear it - a cough - it sounded like a cough."
"Cough be damned! Pass along that return
bucket."
"There again - there it is! - it
sounds like two or three sleepers turning over, now!"
"Caramba! have done, shipmate, will ye? It's the three
soaked biscuits ye eat for supper turning over inside of ye
- nothing else. Look to the bucket!"
"Say what ye will, shipmate; I've sharp ears."
"Aye, you are the chap, ain't ye, that heard the hum of
the old Quakeress's knitting-needles fifty miles at sea from
Nantucket; you're the chap."
"Grin away; we'll
see what turns up. Hark ye, Cabaco, there is somebody down in the
after-hold that has not yet been seen on deck; and I suspect our
old Mogul knows something of it too. I heard Stubb tell Flask,
one morning watch, that there was something of that sort in the
wind."
"Tish! the bucket!"
*x*
*x moby_044.html/Chapter xliv - THE CHART*
Had you followed Captain Ahab down into his cabin
after the squall that took place on the night succeeding that wild
ratification of his purpose with his crew, you would have seen him
go to a locker in the transom, and bringing out a large wrinkled
roll of yellowish sea charts, spread them before him on his
screwed-down table. Then seating himself before it, you would
have seen him intently study the various lines and shadings which
there met his eye; and with slow but steady pencil trace
additional courses over spaces that before were blank. At
intervals, he would refer to piles of old log-books beside him,
wherein were set down the seasons and places in which, on various
former voyages of various ships, Sperm Whales had been captured or
seen.
While thus employed, the heavy pewter lamp
suspended in chains over his head, continually rocked with the
motion of the ship, and for ever threw shifting gleams and shadows
of lines upon his wrinkled brow, till it almost seemed that while
he himself was marking out lines and courses on the wrinkled
charts, some invisible pencil was also tracing lines and courses
upon the deeply marked chart of his forehead.
But it
was not this night in particular that, in the solitude of
his cabin, Ahab thus pondered over his charts. Almost every night
they were brought out; almost every night some pencil marks were
effaced, and others were substituted. For with the charts of all
four oceans before him, Ahab was threading a maze of currents and
eddies, with a view to the more certain accomplishment of that
monomaniac thought of his soul.
Now, to any one not
fully acquainted with the ways of the leviathans, it might seem an
absurdly hopeless task thus to seek out one solitary creature in
the unhooped oceans of this planet. But not so did it seem to
Ahab, who knew the sets of all tides and currents; and thereby
calculating the driftings of the Sperm Whale's food; and, also,
calling to mind the regular, ascertained seasons for hunting him
in particular latitudes; could arrive at reasonable surmises,
almost approaching to certainties, concerning the timeliest day to
be upon this or that ground in search of his prey.
So assured, indeed, is the fact concerning the
periodicalness of the Sperm Whale's resorting to given waters, that
many hunters believe that, could he be closely observed and
studied throughout the world; were the logs for one voyage of the
entire whale fleet carefully collated, then the migrations of the
Sperm Whale would be found to correspond in invariability to those
of the herring-shoals or the flights of swallows. On this hint,
attempts have been made to construct elaborate migratory charts of
the Sperm Whale.
Besides, when making a passage from
one feeding-ground to another, the Sperm Whales, guided by some
infallible instinct - say, rather, secret intelligence from the
Deity - mostly swim in
veins, as they are called; continuing their way along a
given ocean-line with such undeviating exactitude, that no ship
ever sailed her course, by any chart, with one tithe of such
marvellous precision. Though, in these cases, the direction taken
by any one whale be straight as a surveyor's parallel, and though
the line of advance be strictly confined to its own unavoidable,
straight wake, yet the arbitrary vein in which at these
times he is said to swim, generally embraces some few miles in
width (more or less, as the vein is presumed to expand or
contract); but never exceeds the visual sweep from the whale-
ship's mast-heads, when circumspectly gliding along this magic
zone. The sum is, that at particular seasons within that breadth
and along that path, migrating whales may with great confidence be
looked for.
And hence not only at substantiated
times, upon well known separate feeding-grounds, could Ahab hope
to encounter his prey; but in crossing the widest expanses of
water between those grounds he could, by his art, so place and
time himself on his way, as even then not to be wholly without
prospect of a meeting.
There was a circumstance
which at first sight seemed to entangle his delirious but still
methodical scheme. But not so in the reality, perhaps. Though
the gregarious Sperm Whales have their regular seasons for
particular grounds, yet in general you cannot conclude that the
herds which hunted such and such a latitude or longitude this
year, say, will turn out to be identically the same with those
that were found there the preceding season; though there are
peculiar and unquestionable instances where the contrary of this
has proved true. In general, the same remark, only within a less
wide limit, applies to the solitaries and hermits among the
matured, aged Sperm Whales. So that though Moby Dick had in a
former year been seen, for example, on what is called the
Seychelle ground in the Indian ocean, or Volcano Bay on the
Japanese Coast; yet it did not follow, that were the pequod to
visit either of those spots at any subsequent corresponding season,
she would infallibly encounter him there. So, too, with some other
feeding grounds, where he had at times revealed himself. But all
these seemed only his casual stopping-places and ocean-inns, so to
speak, not his places of prolonged abode. And where Ahab's
chances of accomplishing
his object have hitherto been spoken of, allusion has only been
made to whatever way-side, antecedent, extra prospects were his,
ere a particular set time or place were attained, when all
possibilities would become probabilities, and, as Ahab fondly
thought, every possibility the next thing to a certainty. That
particular set time and place were conjoined in the one technical
phrase - the Season-on-the-Line. For there and then, for several
consecutive years, Moby Dick had been periodically descried,
lingering in those waters for awhile, as the sun, in its annual
round, loiters for a predicted interval in any one sign of the
Zodiac. There it was, too, that most of the deadly encounters
with the White Whale had taken place; there the waves were storied
with his deeds; there also was that tragic spot where the
monomaniac old man had found the awful motive to his vengeance.
But in the cautious comprehensiveness and unloitering vigilance
with which Ahab threw his brooding soul into this unfaltering
hunt, he would not permit himself to rest all his hopes upon the
one crowning fact above mentioned, however flattering it might be
to those hopes; nor in the sleeplessness of his vow could he so
tranquillize his unquiet heart as to postpone all intervening
quest.
Now, the Pequod had sailed from Nantucket at
the very beginning of the Season-on-the-Line. No possible
endeavor then could enable her commander to make the great passage
southwards, double Cape Horn, and then running down sixty degrees
of latitude arrive in the equatorial Pacific in time to cruise
there. Therefore, he must wait for the next ensuing season. Yet
the premature hour of the Pequod's sailing had, perhaps, been
correctly selected by Ahab, with a view to this very complexion of
things. Because, an interval of three hundred and sixty-five days
and nights was before him; an interval which, instead of
impatiently enduring ashore, he would spend in a miscellaneous
hunt; if by chance the White Whale, spending his vacation in seas
far remote from his periodical feeding-grounds, should turn up his
wrinkled brow off the Persian Gulf, or in the Bengal Bay, or China
Seas, or in any other waters haunted by his race. So that
Monsoons, Pampas, Nor-Westers, Harmattans, Trades; any wind but the
Levanter and Simoom, might blow Moby Dick into
the devious zig-zag world-circle of the Pequod's circumnavigating
wake.
But granting all this; yet, regarded
discreetly and coolly, seems it not but a mad idea, this; that in
the broad boundless ocean, one solitary whale, even if
encountered, should be thought capable of individual recognition
from his hunter, even as a white-bearded Mufti in the thronged
thoroughfares of Constantinople? Yes. For the peculiar snow-
white brow of Moby Dick, and his snow-white hump, could not but be
unmistakable. And have I not tallied the whale, Ahab would mutter
to himself, as after poring over his charts till long after
midnight he would throw himself back in reveries - tallied him,
and shall he escape? His broad fins are bored, and scalloped out
like a lost sheep's ear! And here, his mad mind would run on in
a breathless race; till a weariness and faintness of pondering
came over him; and in the open air of the deck he would seek to
recover his strength. Ah, God! what trances of torments does
that man endure who is consumed with one unachieved revengeful
desire. He sleeps with clenched hands; and wakes with his own
bloody nails in his palms.
Often, when forced from
his hammock by exhausting and intolerably vivid dreams of the
night, which, resuming his own intense thoughts through the day,
carried them on amid a clashing of phrensies, and whirled them
round and round in his blazing brain, till the very throbbing of
his life-spot became insufferable anguish; and when, as was
sometimes the case, these spiritual throes in him heaved his being
up from its base, and a chasm seemed opening in him, from which
forked flames and lightnings shot up, and accursed fiends beckoned
him to leap down among them; when this hell in himself yawned
beneath him, a wild cry would be heard through the ship; and with
glaring eyes Ahab would burst from his state room, as though
escaping from a bed that was on fire. Yet these, perhaps, instead
of being the unsuppressable symptoms of some latent weakness, or
fright at his own resolve, were but the plainest tokens of its
intensity. For, at such times, crazy Ahab, the scheming,
unappeasedly steadfast hunter of the White Whale; this Ahab that
had gone to his hammock, was not the agent that so caused
him to burst from it in horror again. The latter was the eternal,
living principle or soul in him; and in sleep, being for the time
dissociated from the characterizing mind, which at other times
employed it for its outer vehicle or agent, it spontaneously
sought escape from the scorching contiguity of the frantic thing,
of which, for the time, it was no longer an integral. But as the
mind does not exist unless leagued with the soul, therefore it
must have been that, in Ahab's case, yielding up all his thoughts
and fancies to his one supreme purpose; that purpose, by its own
sheer inveteracy of will, forced itself against gods and devils
into a kind of self-assumed, independent being of its own. Nay,
could grimly live and burn, while the common vitality to which it
was conjoined, fled horror-stricken from the unbidden and
unfathered birth. Therefore, the tormented spirit that glared out
of bodily eyes, when what seemed Ahab rushed from his room, was for
the time but a vacated thing, a formless somnambulistic being, a
ray of living light, to be sure, but without an object to color,
and therefore a blankness in itself. God help thee, old man, thy
thoughts have created a creature in thee; and he whose intense
thinking thus makes him a Prometheus; a vulture feeds upon that
heart for ever; that vulture the very creature he creates.
So far as what there may be of a narrative in this
book; and, indeed, as indirectly touching one or two very
interesting and curious particulars in the habits of Sperm Whales,
the foregoing chapter, in its earliest part, is as important a one
as will be found in this volume; but the leading matter of it
requires to be still further and more familiarly enlarged upon, in
order to be adequately understood, and moreover to take away any
incredulity which a profound ignorance of the entire subject may
induce in some minds, as to the natural verity of the main points
of this affair.
I care not to perform this part of
my task methodically; but shall be content to produce the desired
impression by separate citations of items, practically or reliably
known to me as a whaleman; and from these citations, I take it
- the conclusion aimed at will naturally follow of itself.
First: I have personally known three instances where a
whale, after receiving a harpoon, has effected a complete escape;
and, after an interval (in one instance of three years), has been
again struck by the same hand, and slain; when the two irons, both
marked by the same private cypher, have been taken from the body.
In the instance where three years intervened between the flinging
of the two harpoons; and I think it may have been something more
than that; the man who darted them happening, in the interval, to
go in a trading ship on a voyage to Africa, went ashore there,
joined a discovery party, and penetrated far into the interior,
where he travelled for a period of nearly two years, often
endangered by serpents, savages, tigers, poisonous miasmas, with
all the other common perils incident to wandering in the heart of
unknown regions. Meanwhile, the whale he had struck must also have
been on its travels; no doubt it had thrice circumnavigated the
globe, brushing with its flanks all the coasts of Africa; but to
no purpose. This man and this whale again came together, and the
one vanquished the other. I say I, myself, have known three
instances similar to this; that is in two of them I saw the whales
struck; and, upon the second attack, saw the two irons with the
respective marks cut in them, afterwards taken from the dead fish.
In the three-year instance, it so fell out that I was in the boat
both times, first and last, and the last time distinctly
recognized a peculiar sort of huge mole under the whale's eye,
which I had observed there three years previous. I say three
years, but I am pretty sure it was more than that. Here are three
instances, then, which I personally know the truth of; but I have
heard of many other instances from persons whose veracity in the
matter there is no good ground to impeach.
Secondly:
It is well known in the Sperm Whale Fishery,
however ignorant the world ashore may be of it, that there have
been several memorable historical instances where a particular
whale in the ocean has been at distant times and places popularly
cognisable. Why such a whale became thus marked was not
altogether and originally owing to his bodily peculiarities as
distinguished from other whales; for however peculiar in that
respect any chance whale may be, they soon put an end to his
peculiarities by killing him, and boiling him down into a
peculiarly valuable oil. No: the reason was this: that from the
fatal experiences of the fishery there hung a terrible prestige of
perilousness about such a whale as there did about Rinaldo
Rinaldini, insomuch that most fishermen were content to recognise
him by merely touching their tarpaulins when he would be
discovered lounging by them on the sea, without seeking to
cultivate a more intimate acquaintance. Like some poor devils
ashore that happen to know an irascible great man, they make
distant unobtrusive salutations to him in the street, lest if they
pursued the acquaintance further, they might receive a summary
thump for their presumption.
But not only did each of
these famous whales enjoy great individual celebrity - nay, you
may call it an ocean-wide renown; not only was he famous in life
and now is immortal in forecastle stories after death, but he was
admitted into all the rights, privileges, and distinctions of a
name; had as much a name indeed as Cambyses or Caesar. Was it not
so, O Timor Tom! thou famed leviathan, scarred like an iceberg,
who so long did'st lurk in the Oriental straits of that name, whose
spout was oft seen from the palmy beach of Ombay? Was it not so,
O New Zealand Jack! thou terror of all cruisers that crossed their
wakes in the vicinity of the Tattoo Land? Was it not so, O
Morquan! King of Japan, whose lofty jet they say at times assumed
the semblance of a snow-white cross against the sky? Was it not
so, O Don Miguel! thou Chilian whale, marked like an old tortoise
with mystic hieroglyphics upon the back! In plain prose, here are
four whales as well known to the students of Cetacean History as
Marius or Sylla to the classic scholar.
But this is
not all. New Zealand Tom and Don Miguel, after at various times
creating great havoc among the boats of different
vessels, were finally gone in quest of, systematically hunted out,
chased and killed by valiant whaling captains, who heaved up their
anchors with that express object as much in view, as in setting
out through the Narragansett Woods, Captain Butler of old had it
in his mind to capture that notorious murderous savage Annawon,
the headmost warrior of the Indian King Philip.
I do
not know where I can find a better place than just here, to make
mention of one or two other things, which to me seem important, as
in printed form establishing in all respects the reasonableness of
the whole story of the White Whale, more especially the
catastrophe. For this is one of those disheartening instances
where truth requires full as much bolstering as error. So ignorant
are most landsmen of some of the plainest and most palpable
wonders of the world, that without some hints touching the plain
facts, historical and otherwise, of the fishery, they might scout
at Moby Dick as a monstrous fable, or still worse and more
detestable, a hideous and intolerable allegory.
First: Though most men have some vague flitting ideas of the
general perils of the grand fishery, yet they have nothing like a
fixed, vivid conception of those perils, and the frequency with
which they recur. One reason perhaps is, that not one in fifty of
the actual disasters and deaths by casualties in the fishery, ever
finds a public record at home, however transient and immediately
forgotten that record. Do you suppose that that poor fellow
there, who this moment perhaps caught by the whale-line off the
coast of New Guinea, is being carried down to the bottom of the sea
by the sounding leviathan - do you suppose that that poor
fellow's name will appear in the newspaper obituary you will read
to-morrow at your breakfast? No: because the mails are very
irregular between here and New Guinea. In fact, did you ever hear
what might be called regular news direct or indirect from New
Guinea? Yet I tell you that upon one particular voyage which I
made to the Pacific, among many others we spoke thirty different
ships, every one of which had had a death by a whale, some of them
more than one, and three that had each lost a boat's crew. For
God's sake, be economical with your lamps and candles! not a
gallon you burn, but at least one drop of man's blood was spilled
for it.
Secondly: People ashore have indeed some indefinite idea that
a whale is an enormous creature of enormous power; but I have ever
found that when narrating to them some specific example of this
two-fold enormousness, they have significantly complimented me
upon my facetiousness; when, I declare upon my soul, I had no more
idea of being facetious than Moses, when he wrote the history of
the plagues of Egypt.
But fortunately the special
point I here seek can be established upon testimony entirely
independent of my own. That point is this: The Sperm Whale is in
some cases sufficiently powerful, knowing, and judiciously
malicious, as with direct aforethought to stave in, utterly
destroy, and sink a large ship; and what is more, the Sperm Whale
has done it.
First: In the year 1820 the ship Essex,
Captain Pollard, of Nantucket, was cruising in the Pacific Ocean.
One day she saw spouts, lowered her boats, and gave chase to a
shoal of Sperm Whales. Ere long, several of the whales were
wounded; when, suddenly, a very large whale escaping from the
boats, issued from the shoal, and bore directly down upon the
ship. dashing his forehead against her hull, he so stove her in,
that in less than "ten minutes" she settled down and fell
over. Not a surviving plank of her has been seen since. After
the severest exposure, part of the crew reached the land in their
boats. Being returned home at last, Captain Pollard once more
sailed for the Pacific in command of another ship, but the gods
shipwrecked him again upon unknown rocks and breakers; for the
second time his ship was utterly lost, and forthwith forswearing
the sea, he has never tempted it since. At this day Captain
Pollard is a resident of Nantucket. I have seen Owen Chace, who
was chief mate of the Essex at the time of the tragedy; I have
read his plain and faithful narrative; I have conversed with his
son; and all this within a few miles of the scene of the
catastrophe.
Secondly: The ship Union, also of Nantucket, was in the year
1807 totally lost off the Azores by a similar onset, but the
authentic particulars of this catastrophe I have never chanced to
encounter, though from the whale hunters I have now and then heard
casual allusions to it.
Thirdly: Some eighteen or
twenty years ago Commodore J - then commanding an American
sloop-of-war of the first class, happened to be dining with a party
of whaling captains, on board a Nantucket ship in the harbor of
Oahu, Sandwich Islands. Conversation turning upon whales, the
Commodore was pleased to be sceptical touching the amazing
strength ascribed to them by the professional gentlemen present.
He peremptorily denied for example, that any whale could so smite
his stout sloop-of-war as to cause her to leak so much as a
thimbleful. Very good; but there is more coming. Some weeks
after, the commodore set sail in this impregnable craft for
Valparaiso. But he was stopped on the way by a portly Sperm
Whale, that begged a few moments' confidential business with him.
that business consisted in fetching the Commodore's craft
such a thwack, that with all his pumps going he made straight for
the nearest port to heave down and repair. I am not
superstitious, but I consider the Commodore's interview with that
whale as providential. Was not Saul of Tarsus converted from
unbelief by a similar fright? I tell you, the Sperm Whale will
stand no nonsense.
I will now refer you to
Langsdorff's Voyages for a little circumstance in point,
peculiarly interesting to the writer hereof. Langsdorff, you must
know by the way, was attached to the Russian Admiral Krusenstern's
famous Discovery Expedition in the beginning of the present
century. Captain Langsdorff thus begins his seventeenth
chapter.
"By the thirteenth of May our ship was
ready to sail, and the next day we were out in the open sea, on
our way to Ochotsh. The weather was very clear and fine, but so
intolerably cold that we were obliged to keep on our fur clothing.
For some days we had very little wind; it was not till the
nineteenth that a brisk gale from the northwest sprang up. An
uncommon large whale, the body of which was larger than the ship
itself, lay almost at the surface of the water, but was not
perceived by any one on board till the moment when the ship, which
was in full sail, was almost upon him, so that it was impossible
to prevent its striking against him. We were thus placed in the
most imminent danger, as this gigantic creature, setting up its
back, raised the ship three feet at least out of the water. The
masts reeled, and the sails fell altogether, while we who were
below all sprang instantly upon the deck, concluding that we had
struck upon some rock; instead of this we saw the monster sailing
off with the utmost gravity and solemnity. Captain D'Wolf applied
immediately to the pumps to examine whether or not the vessel had
received any damage from the shock, but we found that very happily
it had escaped entirely uninjured."
Now, the
Captain D'Wolf here alluded to as commanding the ship in question,
is a New Englander, who, after a long life of unusual adventures
as a sea-captain, this day resides in the village of Dorchester
near Boston. I have the honor of being a nephew of his. I have
particularly questioned him concerning this passage in Langsdorff.
He substantiates every word.
The ship, however, was by no means a large one: a Russian craft
built on the Siberian coast, and purchased by my uncle after
bartering away the vessel in which he sailed from home.
In that up and down manly book of old-fashioned adventure,
so full, too, of honest wonders - the voyage of Lionel Wafer, one
of ancient Dampier's old chums - I found a little matter set down
so like that just quoted from Langsdorff, that I cannot forbear
inserting it here for a corroborative example, if such be
needed.
Lionel, it seems, was on his way to "John
Ferdinando," as he calls the modern Juan Fernandes. "In our
way thither," he says, "about four o'clock in the morning,
when we were about one hundred and fifty leagues from the Main of
America, our ship felt a terrible shock, which put our men in such
consternation that they could hardly tell where they were or what
to think; but every one began to prepare for death. And, indeed,
the shock was so sudden and violent, that we took it for granted
the ship had struck against a rock; but when the amazement was a
little over, we cast the lead, and sounded, but found no ground. *
* * The suddenness of the shock made the guns leap in their
carriages, and several of the men were shaken out of their
hammocks. Captain Davis, who lay with his head on a gun, was
thrown out of his cabin!" Lionel then goes on to impute the
shock to an earthquake, and seems to substantiate the imputation by
stating that a great earthquake, somewhere about that time, did
actually do great mischief along the spanish land. but i should
not much wonder if, in the darkness of that early hour of the
morning, the shock was after all caused by an unseen whale
vertically bumping the hull from beneath.
I might
proceed with several more examples, one way or another known to
me, of the great power and malice at times of the Sperm Whale. In
more than one instance, he has been known, not only to chase the
assailing boats back to their ships, but to pursue the ship
itself, and long withstand all the lances hurled at him from its
decks. The English ship Pusie Hall can tell a story on that head;
and, as for his strength, let me say, that there have been examples
where the lines attached to
a running Sperm Whale have, in a calm, been transferred to the
ship, and secured there; the whale towing her great hull through
the water, as a horse walks off with a cart. Again, it is very
often observed that, if the Sperm Whale, once struck, is allowed
time to rally, he then acts, not so often with blind rage, as with
wilful, deliberate designs of destruction to his pursuers; nor is
it without conveying some eloquent indication of his character,
that upon being attacked he will frequently open his mouth, and
retain it in that dread expansion for several consecutive minutes.
But I must be content with only one more and a concluding
illustration; a remarkable and most significant one, by which you
will not fail to see, that not only is the most marvellous event
in this book corroborated by plain facts of the present day, but
that these marvels (like all marvels) are mere repetitions of the
ages; so that for the millionth time we say amen with Solomon
- Verily there is nothing new under the sun.
In
the sixth Christian century lived Procopius, a Christian
magistrate of Constantinople, in the days when Justinian was
Emperor and Belisarius general. As many know, he wrote the
history of his own times, a work every way of uncommon value. By
the best authorities, he has always been considered a most
trustworthy and unexaggerating historian, except in some one or
two particulars, not at all affecting the matter presently to be
mentioned.
Now, in this history of his, Procopius
mentions that, during the term of his prefecture at Constantinople,
a great sea-monster was captured in the neighboring Propontis, or
Sea of Marmora, after having destroyed vessels at intervals in
those waters for a period of more than fifty years. A fact thus
set down in substantial history cannot easily be gainsaid. Nor is
there any reason it should be. Of what precise species this sea-
monster was, is not mentioned. But as he destroyed ships, as well
as for other reasons, he must have been a whale; and I am strongly
inclined to think a Sperm Whale. And I will tell you why. For a
long time I fancied that the Sperm Whale had been always unknown in
the Mediterranean and the deep waters connecting with it. Even
now I am certain that those seas are not, and perhaps never can
be, in the present constitution of
things, a place for his habitual gregarious resort. But further
investigations have recently proved to me, that in modern times
there have been isolated instances of the presence of the Sperm
Whale in the Mediterranean. I am told, on good authority, that on
the Barbary coast, a Commodore Davis of the British navy found the
skeleton of a Sperm Whale. Now, as a vessel of war readily passes
through the Dardanelles, hence a Sperm Whale could, by the same
route, pass out of the Mediterranean into the Propontis.
In the Propontis, as far as I can learn, none of that
peculiar substance called brit is to be found, the aliment
of the Right Whale. But I have every reason to believe that the
food of the Sperm Whale - squid or cuttle-fish - lurks at the
bottom of that sea, because large creatures, but by no means the
largest of that sort, have been found at its surface. If, then,
you properly put these statements together, and reason upon them a
bit, you will clearly perceive that, according to all human
reasoning, Procopius's sea-monster, that for half a century stove
the ships of a Roman Emperor, must in all probability have been a
Sperm Whale.
Though, consumed with the hot fire of his purpose,
Ahab in all his thoughts and actions ever had in view the ultimate
capture of Moby Dick; though he seemed ready to sacrifice all
mortal interests to that one passion; nevertheless it may have
been that he was by nature and long habituation far too wedded to
a fiery whaleman's ways, altogether to abandon the collateral
prosecution of the voyage. Or at least if this were otherwise,
there were not wanting other motives much more influential with
him. It would be refining too much, perhaps, even considering his
monomania, to hint that his vindictiveness towards
the White Whale might have possibly extended itself in some degree
to all Sperm Whales, and that the more monsters he slew by so much
the more he multiplied the chances that each subsequently
encountered whale would prove to be the hated one he hunted. But
if such an hypothesis be indeed exceptionable, there were still
additional considerations which, though not so strictly according
with the wildness of his ruling passion, yet were by no means
incapable of swaying him.
To accomplish his object
Ahab must use tools; and of all tools used in the shadow of the
moon, men are most apt to get out of order. He knew, for example,
that however magnetic his ascendency in some respects was over
Starbuck, yet that ascendency did not cover the complete spiritual
man any more than mere corporeal superiority involves intellectual
mastership; for to the purely spiritual, the intellectual but
stand in a sort of corporeal relation. Starbuck's body and
Starbuck's coerced will were Ahab's, so long as Ahab kept his
magnet at Starbuck's brain; still he knew that for all this the
chief mate, in his soul, abhorred his captain's quest, and could
he, would joyfully disintegrate himself from it, or even frustrate
it. it might be that a long interval would elapse ere the White
Whale was seen. During that long interval Starbuck would ever be
apt to fall into open relapses of rebellion against his captain's
leadership, unless some ordinary, prudential, circumstantial
influences were brought to bear upon him. Not only that, but the
subtle insanity of Ahab respecting Moby Dick was noways more
significantly manifested than in his superlative sense and
shrewdness in foreseeing that, for the present, the hunt should in
some way be stripped of that strange imaginative impiousness which
naturally invested it; that the full terror of the voyage must be
kept withdrawn into the obscure background (for few men's courage
is proof against protracted meditation unrelieved by action); that
when they stood their long night watches, his officers and men
must have some nearer things to think of than Moby Dick. For
however eagerly and impetuously the savage crew had hailed the
announcement of his quest; yet all sailors of all sorts are more or
less capricious and unreliable - they live in the varying outer
weather, and they inhale its fickleness - and when retained
for any object remote and blank in the pursuit, however promissory
of life and passion in the end, it is above all things requisite
that temporary interests and employment should intervene and hold
them healthily suspended for the final dash.
Nor was
Ahab unmindful of another thing. In times of strong emotion
mankind disdain all base considerations; but such times are
evanescent. The permanent constitutional condition of the
manufactured man, thought Ahab, is sordidness. Granting that the
White Whale fully incites the hearts of this my savage crew, and
playing round their savageness even breeds a certain generous
knight-errantism in them, still, while for the love of it they
give chase to Moby Dick, they must also have food for their more
common, daily appetites. For even the high lifted and chivalric
Crusaders of old times were not content to traverse two thousand
miles of land to fight for their holy sepulchre, without
committing burglaries, picking pockets, and gaining other pious
perquisites by the way. Had they been strictly held to their one
final and romantic object - that final and romantic object, too
many would have turned from in disgust. I will not strip these
men, thought Ahab, of all hopes of cash - aye, cash. They may
scorn cash now; but let some months go by, and no perspective
promise of it to them, and then this same quiescent cash all at
once mutinying in them, this same cash would soon cashier
Ahab.
Nor was there wanting still another
precautionary motive more related to Ahab personally. Having
impulsively, it is probable, and perhaps somewhat prematurely
revealed the prime but private purpose of the Pequod's voyage,
Ahab was now entirely conscious that, in so doing, he had
indirectly laid himself open to the unanswerable charge of
usurpation; and with perfect impunity, both moral and legal, his
crew if so disposed, and to that end competent, could refuse all
further obedience to him, and even violently wrest from him the
command. From even the barely hinted imputation of usurpation,
and the possible consequences of such a suppressed impression
gaining ground, Ahab must of course have been most anxious to
protect himself. That protection could only consist in his own
predominating brain and heart and hand, backed by a heedful,
closely calculating
attention to every minute atmospheric influence which it was
possible for his crew to be subjected to.
For all
these reasons then, and others perhaps too analytic to be verbally
developed here, Ahab plainly saw that he must still in a good
degree continue true to the natural, nominal purpose of the
Pequod's voyage; observe all customary usages; and not only that,
but force himself to evince all his well known passionate interest
in the general pursuit of his profession.
Be all
this as it may, his voice was now often heard hailing the three
mast-heads and admonishing them to keep a bright look-out, and not
omit reporting even a porpoise. This vigilance was not long
without reward.
*x*
*x moby_047.html/Chapter xlvii - THE MAT-MAKER*
It was a cloudy, sultry afternoon; the seamen were
lazily lounging about the decks, or vacantly gazing over into the
lead-colored waters. Queequeg and I were mildly employed weaving
what is called a sword-mat, for an additional lashing to our boat.
So still and subdued and yet somehow preluding was all the scene,
and such an incantation of revery lurked in the air, that each
silent sailor seemed resolved into his own invisible self.
I was the attendant or page of Queequeg, while busy at the
mat. As I kept passing and repassing the filling or woof of
marline between the long yarns of the warp, using my own hand for
the shuttle, and as Queequeg, standing sideways, ever and anon slid
his heavy oaken sword between the threads, and idly looking off
upon the water, carelessly and unthinkingly drove home every yarn:
I say so strange a dreaminess did there then reign all over the
ship and all over the sea, only broken by the intermitting dull
sound of the sword, that it seemed as if this were the Loom of
Time, and I myself were a shuttle mechanically weaving and weaving
away at the Fates. There lay the fixed
threads of the warp subject to but one single, ever returning,
unchanging vibration, and that vibration merely enough to admit of
the crosswise interblending of other threads with its own. This
warp seemed necessity; and here, thought I, with my own hand I ply
my own shuttle and weave my own destiny into these unalterable
threads. Meantime, Queequeg's impulsive, indifferent sword,
sometimes hitting the woof slantingly, or crookedly, or strongly,
or weakly, as the case might be; and by this difference in the
concluding blow producing a corresponding contrast in the final
aspect of the completed fabric; this savage's sword, thought I,
which thus finally shapes and fashions both warp and woof; this
easy, indifferent sword must be chance - aye, chance, free will,
and necessity - no wise incompatible - all interweavingly
working together. The straight warp of necessity, not to be
swerved from its ultimate course - its every alternating
vibration, indeed, only tending to that; free will still free to
ply her shuttle between given threads; and chance, though
restrained in its play within the right lines of necessity, and
sideways in its motions directed by free will, though thus
prescribed to by both, chance by turns rules either, and has the
last featuring blow at events.
Thus we were weaving and weaving away when I started at a
sound so strange, long drawn, and musically wild and unearthly,
that the ball of free will dropped from my hand, and I stood
gazing up at the clouds whence that voice dropped like a wing.
High aloft in the cross-trees was that mad Gay-Header, Tashtego.
His body was reaching eagerly forward, his hand stretched out like
a wand, and at brief sudden intervals he continued his cries. To
be sure the same sound was that very moment perhaps being heard all
over the seas, from hundreds of whalemen's look-outs perched as
high in the air; but from few of those lungs could that accustomed
old cry have derived such a marvellous cadence as from Tashtego
the Indian's.
As he stood hovering over you half
suspended in air, so wildly and eagerly peering towards the
horizon, you would have thought him some prophet or seer beholding
the shadows of Fate, and by those wild cries announcing their
coming.
"There she blows! there! there! there!
she blows! she blows!"
"Where-away?"
"On the lee-beam, about
two miles off! a school of them!"
Instantly all
was commotion.
The Sperm Whale blows as a clock
ticks, with the same undeviating and reliable uniformity. And
thereby whalemen distinguish this fish from other tribes of his
genus.
"There go flukes!" was now the cry
from Tashtego; and the whales disappeared.
"Quick,
steward!" cried Ahab. "Time! time!"
Dough-Boy hurried below, glanced at the watch, and reported
the exact minute to Ahab.
The ship was now kept away
from the wind, and she went gently rolling before it. Tashtego
reporting that the whales had gone down heading to leeward, we
confidently looked to see them again directly in advance of our
bows. For that singular craft at times evinced by the Sperm Whale
when, sounding with his head in one direction, he nevertheless,
while concealed beneath the surface, mills round, and swiftly
swims off in the opposite quarter - this deceitfulness of his
could not now be in action; for there was no reason to suppose
that the fish seen by Tashtego had been in any way alarmed, or
indeed knew at all of our vicinity. One of the men selected for
shipkeepers - that is, those not appointed to the boats, by this
time relieved the Indian at the main-mast head. The sailors at
the fore and mizzen had come down; the line tubs were fixed in
their places; the cranes were thrust out; the mainyard was backed,
and the three boats swung over the sea like three samphire baskets
over high cliffs. Outside of the bulwarks their eager crews with
one hand clung to the rail, while one foot was expectantly poised
on the gunwale. So look the long line of man-of-war's men about
to throw themselves on board an enemy's ship.
But at
this critical instant a sudden exclamation was heard that took
every eye from the whale. With a start all glared at dark Ahab,
who was surrounded by five dusky phantoms that seemed fresh formed
out of air.
*x*
*x moby_048.html/Chapter xlviii - THE FIRST LOWERING*
The phantoms, for so they then seemed, were flitting
on the other side of the deck, and, with a noiseless celerity,
were casting loose the tackles and bands of the boat which swung
there. This boat had always been deemed one of the spare boats,
though technically called the captain's, on account of its hanging
from the starboard quarter. The figure that now stood by its bows
was tall and swart, with one white tooth evilly protruding from
its steel-like lips. A rumpled Chinese jacket of black cotton
funereally invested him, with wide black trowsers of the same dark
stuff. But strangely crowning his ebonness was a glistening white
plaited turban, the living hair braided and coiled round and round
upon his head. Less swart in aspect, the companions of this figure
were of that vivid, tiger-yellow complexion peculiar to some of the
aboriginal natives of the Manillas; - a race notorious for a
certain diabolism of subtilty, and by some honest white mariners
supposed to be the paid spies and secret confidential agents on
the water of the devil, their lord, whose counting-room they
suppose to be elsewhere.
While yet the wondering
ship's company were gazing upon these strangers, Ahab cried out to
the white-turbaned old man at their head, "All ready there,
Fedallah?"
"Ready," was the half-hissed
reply.
"Lower away then; d'ye hear?" shouting
across the deck. "Lower away there, I say."
Such was the thunder of his voice, that spite of their
amazement the men sprang over the rail; the sheaves whirled round
in the blocks; with a wallow, the three boats dropped into the sea;
while, with a dexterous, off-handed daring, unknown in any other
vocation, the sailors, goat-like, leaped down the rolling ship's
side into the tossed boats below.
Hardly had they
pulled out from under the ship's lee, when
a fourth keel, coming from the windward side, pulled round under
the stern, and showed the five strangers rowing Ahab, who,
standing erect in the stern, loudly hailed Starbuck, Stubb, and
Flask, to spread themselves widely, so as to cover a large expanse
of water. but with all their eyes again riveted upon the swart
Fedallah and his crew, the inmates of the other boats obeyed not
the command.
"Captain Ahab? - " said
Starbuck.
"Spread yourselves," cried Ahab;
"give way, all four boats. Thou, Flask, pull out more to
leeward!"
"Aye, aye, sir," cheerily cried
little King-Post, sweeping round his great steering oar. "Lay
back!" addressing his crew. "There! - there! - there
again! There she blows right ahead, boys! - lay
back!"
"Never heed yonder yellow boys,
Archy."
"Oh, I don't mind 'em, sir," said
Archy; "I knew it all before now. Didn't I hear 'em in the
hold? And didn't I tell Cabaco here of it? What say ye, Cabaco?
They are stowaways, Mr. Flask."
"Pull, pull, my
fine hearts-alive; pull, my children; pull, my little ones,"
drawingly and soothingly sighed Stubb to his crew, some of whom
still showed signs of uneasiness. "Why don't you break your
backbones, my boys? What is it you stare at? Those chaps in
yonder boat? Tut! They are only five more hands come to help us
- never mind from where - the more the merrier. Pull, then, do
pull; never mind the brimstone - devils are good fellows enough.
So, so; there you are now; that's the stroke for a thousand
pounds; that's the stroke to sweep the stakes! Hurrah for the
gold cup of sperm oil, my heroes! Three cheers, men - all hearts
alive! Easy, easy; don't be in a hurry - don't be in a hurry.
Why don't you snap your oars, you rascals? Bite something, you
dogs! So, so, so, then; - softly, softly! That's it - that's
it! long and strong. Give way there, give way! The devil fetch
ye, ye ragamuffin rapscallions; ye are all asleep. Stop snoring,
ye sleepers, and pull. Pull, will ye? pull, can't ye? pull,
won't ye? Why in the name of gudgeons and ginger-cakes don't ye
pull? - pull and break something! pull, and start your
eyes out! Here! whipping out the sharp knife from his girdle;
every mother's son of ye draw his knife, and pull with the blade
between his teeth. That's it - that's it. Now ye do something;
that looks like it, my steel-bits. Start her - start her, my
silver-spoons! Start her, marling-spikes!"
Stubb's exordium to his crew is given here at large, because
he had rather a peculiar way of talking to them in general, and
especially in inculcating the religion of rowing. But you must
not suppose from this specimen of his sermonizings that he ever
flew into downright passions with his congregation. Not at all;
and therein consisted his chief peculiarity. He would say the most
terrific things to his crew, in a tone so strangely compounded of
fun and fury, and the fury seemed so calculated merely as a spice
to the fun, that no oarsman could hear such queer invocations
without pulling for dear life, and yet pulling for the mere joke
of the thing. Besides he all the time looked so easy and indolent
himself, so loungingly managed his steering-oar, and so broadly
gaped - open-mouthed at times - that the mere sight of such a
yawning commander, by sheer force of contrast, acted like a charm
upon the crew. Then again, Stubb was one of those odd sort of
humorists, whose jollity is sometimes so curiously ambiguous, as to
put all inferiors on their guard in the matter of obeying
them.
In obedience to a sign from Ahab, Starbuck was
now pulling obliquely across Stubb's bow; and when for a minute or
so the two boats were pretty near to each other, Stubb hailed the
mate.
"Mr. Starbuck! larboard boat there, ahoy!
a word with ye, sir, if ye please!"
"Halloa!" returned Starbuck, turning round not a
single inch as he spoke; still earnestly but whisperingly urging
his crew; his face set like a flint from Stubb's.
"What think ye of those yellow boys, sir!"
"Smuggled on board, somehow, before the ship sailed.
(Strong, strong, boys!") in a whisper to his crew, then
speaking out loud again: "A sad business, Mr. Stubb! (seethe
her, seethe her, my lads!) but never mind, Mr. Stubb, all for the
best. Let all your crew pull strong, come what will. (Spring, my
men, spring!)
There's hogsheads of sperm ahead, Mr. Stubb, and that's what ye
came for. (Pull, my boys!) Sperm, sperm's the play! This at least
is duty; duty and profit hand in hand!"
"Aye,
aye, I thought as much," soliloquized Stubb, when the boats
diverged, "as soon as I clapt eye on 'em, I thought so. Aye,
and that's what he went into the after hold for, so often, as
Dough-Boy long suspected. They were hidden down there. The White
Whale's at the bottom of it. Well, well, so be it! Can't be
helped! All right! Give way, men! It ain't the White Whale to-
day! Give way!"
Now the advent of these
outlandish strangers at such a critical instant as the lowering of
the boats from the deck, this had not unreasonably awakened a sort
of superstitious amazement in some of the ship's company; but
Archy's fancied discovery having some time previous got abroad
among them, though indeed not credited then, this had in some
small measure prepared them for the event. It took off the extreme
edge of their wonder; and so what with all this and Stubb's
confident way of accounting for their appearance, they were for
the time freed from superstitious surmisings; though the affair
still left abundant room for all manner of wild conjectures as to
dark Ahab's precise agency in the matter from the beginning. For
me, I silently recalled the mysterious shadows I had seen creeping
on board the Pequod during the dim Nantucket dawn, as well as the
enigmatical hintings of the unaccountable Elijah.
Meantime, Ahab, out of hearing of his officers, having sided
the furthest to windward, was still ranging ahead of the other
boats; a circumstance bespeaking how potent a crew was pulling
him. those tiger yellow creatures of his seemed all steel and
whale-bone; like five trip-hammers they rose and fell with regular
strokes of strength, which periodically started the boat along the
water like a horizontal burst boiler out of a Mississippi steamer.
As for Fedallah, who was seen pulling the harpooneer oar, he had
thrown aside his black jacket, and displayed his naked chest with
the whole part of his body above the gunwale, clearly cut against
the alternating depressions of the watery horizon; while at the
other end of the boat Ahab, with one
arm, like a fencer's, thrown half backward into the air, as if to
counterbalance any tendency to trip: Ahab was seen steadily
managing his steering oar as in a thousand boat lowerings ere the
White Whale had torn him. All at once the out-stretched arm gave
a peculiar motion and then remained fixed, while the boat's five
oars were seen simultaneously peaked. Boat and crew sat
motionless on the sea. Instantly the three spread boats in the
rear paused on their way. The whales had irregularly settled
bodily down into the blue, thus giving no distantly discernible
token of the movement, though from his closer vicinity Ahab had
observed it.
"Every man look out along his
oars!" cried Starbuck. "Thou, Queequeg, stand
up!"
Nimbly springing up on the triangular raised
box in the bow, the savage stood erect there, and with intensely
eager eyes gazed off towards the spot where the chase had last been
descried. Likewise upon the extreme stern of the boat where it was
also triangularly platformed level with the gunwale, Starbuck
himself was seen coolly and adroitly balancing himself to the
jerking tossings of his chip of a craft, and silently eyeing the
vast blue eye of the sea.
Not very far distant
Flask's boat was also lying breathlessly still; its commander
recklessly standing upon the top of the loggerhead, a stout sort of
post rooted in the keel, and rising some two feet above the level
of the stern platform. it is used for catching turns with the
whale line. Its top is not more spacious than the palm of a man's
hand, and standing upon such a base as that, Flask seemed perched
at the mast-head of some ship which had sunk to all but her
trucks. But little King-Post was small and short, and at the same
time little King-Post was full of a large and tall ambition, so
that this loggerhead stand-point of his did by no means satisfy
King-Post.
"I can't see three seas off; tip us up
an oar there, and let me on to that."
Upon this,
Daggoo, with either hand upon the gunwale to steady his way,
swiftly slid aft, and then erecting himself volunteered his lofty
shoulders for a pedestal.
Good a mast-head as any, sir. Will you mount?"
"That I will, and thank ye very much, my fine fellow;
only I wish you fifty feet taller."
Whereupon
planting his feet firmly against two opposite planks of the boat,
the gigantic negro, stooping a little, presented his flat palm to
Flask's foot, and then putting Flask's hand on his hearse-plumed
head and bidding him spring as he himself should toss, with one
dexterous fling landed the little man high and dry on his
shoulders. And here was Flask now standing, Daggoo with one
lifted arm furnishing him with a breast-band to lean against and
steady himself by.
At any time it is a strange sight
to the tyro to see with what wondrous habitude of unconscious
skill the whaleman will maintain an erect posture in his boat,
even when pitched about by the most riotously perverse and cross-
running seas. Still more strange to see him giddily perched upon
the loggerhead itself, under such circumstances. But the sight of
little Flask mounted upon gigantic Daggoo was yet more curious;
for sustaining himself with a cool, indifferent, easy, unthought
of, barbaric majesty, the noble negro to every roll of the sea
harmoniously rolled his fine form. On his broad back, flaxen-
haired flask seemed a snow-flake. The bearer looked nobler than
the rider. Though truly vivacious, tumultuous, ostentatious
little Flask would now and then stamp with impatience; but not one
added heave did he thereby give to the negro's lordly chest. So
have I seen Passion and Vanity stamping the living magnanimous
earth, but the earth did not alter her tides and her seasons for
that.
Meanwhile Stubb, the third mate, betrayed no
such far-gazing solicitudes. The whales might have made one of
their regular soundings, not a temporary dive from mere fright; and
if that were the case, Stubb, as his wont in such cases, it seems,
was resolved to solace the languishing interval with his pipe. He
withdrew it from his hatband, where he always wore it aslant like
a feather. He loaded it, and rammed home the loading with his
thumb-end; but hardly had he ignited his match across the rough
sand-paper of his hand, when Tashtego, his harpooneer, whose eyes
had been setting to windward like two fixed stars, suddenly
dropped like light from his erect attitude to his seat,
crying out in a quick phrensy of hurry, "Down, down all, and
give way! - there they are!"
To a landsman, no
whale, nor any sign of a herring, would have been visible at that
moment; nothing but a troubled bit of greenish white water, and
thin scattered puffs of vapor hovering over it, and suffusingly
blowing off to leeward, like the confused scud from white rolling
billows. The air around suddenly vibrated and tingled, as it were,
like the air over intensely heated plates of iron. Beneath this
atmospheric waving and curling, and partially beneath a thin layer
of water, also, the whales were swimming. Seen in advance of all
the other indications, the puffs of vapor they spouted, seemed
their forerunning couriers and detached flying outriders.
All four boats were now in keen pursuit of that one spot of
troubled water and air. But it bade far to outstrip them; it flew
on and on, as a mass of interblending bubbles borne down a rapid
stream from the hills.
"Pull, pull, my good
boys," said Starbuck, in the lowest possible but intensest
concentrated whisper to his men; while the sharp fixed glance from
his eyes darted straight ahead of the bow, almost seemed as two
visible needles in two unerring binnacle compasses. He did not
say much to his crew, though, nor did his crew say anything to
him. Only the silence of the boat was at intervals startlingly
pierced by one of his peculiar whispers, now harsh with command,
now soft with entreaty.
How different the loud little
King-Post. "Sing out and say something, my hearties. Roar and
pull, my thunderbolts! Beach me, beach me on their black backs,
boys; only do that for me, and I'll sign over to you my Martha's
Vineyard plantation, boys; including wife and children, boys. Lay
me on - lay me on! O Lord, Lord! but I shall go stark, staring
mad: See! see that white water!" And so shouting, he pulled
his hat from his head, and stamped up and down on it; then picking
it up, flirted it far off upon the sea; and finally fell to
rearing and plunging in the boat's stern like a crazed colt from
the prairie.
"Look at that chap now,"
philosophically drawled Stubb, who, with his unlighted short pipe,
mechanically retained between his teeth, at a short distance,
followed after - "He's got fits, that
Flask has. Fits? yes, give him fits - that's the very word -
pitch fits into 'em. Merrily, merrily, hearts-alive. Pudding for
supper, you know; - merry's the word. Pull, babes - pull,
sucklings - pull, all. But what the devil are you hurrying
about? Softly, softly, and steadily, my men. Only pull, and keep
pulling; nothing more. Crack all your backbones, and bite your
knives in two - that's all. Take it easy - why don't ye take
it easy, I say, and burst all your livers and lungs!"
But what it was that inscrutable Ahab said to that tiger-
yellow crew of his - these were words best omitted here; for you
live under the blessed light of the evangelical land.
Only the infidel sharks in the audacious seas may give ear
to such words, when, with tornado brow, and eyes of red murder,
and foam-glued lips, Ahab leaped after his prey.
Meanwhile, all the boats tore on. The repeated specific
allusions of Flask to "that whale", as he called the
fictitious monster which he declared to be incessantly tantalizing
his boat's bow with its tail - these allusions of his were at
times so vivid and life-like, that they would cause some one or
two of his men to snatch a fearful look over the shoulder. But
this was against all rule; for the oarsmen must put out their eyes,
and ram a skewer through their necks; usage pronouncing that they
must have no organs but ears, and no limbs but arms, in these
critical moments.
It was a sight full of quick
wonder and awe! The vast swells of the omnipotent sea; the
surging, hollow roar they made, as they rolled along the eight
gunwales, like gigantic bowls in a boundless bowling-green; the
brief suspended agony of the boat, as it would tip for an instant
on the knife-like edge of the sharper waves, that almost seemed
threatening to cut it in two; the sudden profound dip into the
watery glens and hollows; the keen spurrings and goadings to gain
the top of the opposite hill; the headlong, sled-like slide down
its other side; - all these, with the cries of the headsmen and
harpooneers, and the shuddering gasps of the oarsmen, with the
wondrous sight of the ivory Pequod bearing down upon her boats
with outstretched sails, like a wild hen after her screaming
brood; - all this was thrilling. Not the raw recruit, marching
from the bosom of his wife into the fever heat of his first battle;
not the dead man's ghost encountering
the first unknown phantom in the other world; - neither of these
can feel stranger and stronger emotions than that man does, who
for the first time finds himself pulling into the charmed, churned
circle of the hunted Sperm Whale.
The dancing white
water made by the chase was now becoming more and more visible,
owing to the increasing darkness of the dun cloud-shadows flung
upon the sea. The jets of vapor no longer blended, but tilted
everywhere to right and left; the whales seemed separating their
wakes. The boats were pulled more apart; Starbuck giving chase to
three whales running dead to leeward. Our sail was now set, and,
with the still rising wind, we rushed along; the boat going with
such madness through the water, that the lee oars could scarcely
be worked rapidly enough to escape being torn from the row-
locks.
Soon we were running through a suffusing wide
veil of mist; neither ship nor boat to be seen.
"Give way, men," whispered Starbuck, drawing still
further aft the sheet of his sail; "there is time to kill a fish
yet before the squall comes. There's white water again! - close
to! Spring!"
Soon after, two cries in quick
succession on each side of us denoted that the other boats had got
fast; but hardly were they overheard, when with a lightning-like
hurtling whisper Starbuck said: "Stand up!" and Queequeg,
harpoon in hand, sprang to his feet.
Though not one
of the oarsmen was then facing the life and death peril so close
to them ahead, yet with their eyes on the intense countenance of
the mate in the stern of the boat, they knew that the imminent
instant had come; they heard, too, an enormous wallowing sound as
of fifty elephants stirring in their litter. Meanwhile the boat
was still booming through the mist, the waves curling and hissing
around us like the erected crests of enraged serpents.
"That's his hump. There, there, give it to
him!" whispered Starbuck.
A short rushing sound
leaped out of the boat; it was the darted iron of Queequeg. Then
all in one welded commotion came an invisible push from astern,
while forward the boat seemed striking on a ledge; the sail
collapsed and exploded; a
gush of scalding vapor shot up near by; something rolled and
tumbled like an earthquake beneath us. The whole crew were half
suffocated as they were tossed helter-skelter into the white
curdling cream of the squall. Squall, whale, and harpoon had all
blended together; and the whale, merely grazed by the iron,
escaped.
Though completely swamped, the boat was
nearly unharmed. Swimming round it we picked up the floating oars,
and lashing them across the gunwale, tumbled back to our places.
There we sat up to our knees in the sea, the water covering every
rib and plank, so that to our downward gazing eyes the suspended
craft seemed a coral boat grown up to us from the bottom of the
ocean.
The wind increased to a howl; the waves dashed
their bucklers together; the whole squall roared, forked, and
crackled around us like a white fire upon the prairie, in which,
unconsumed, we were burning; immortal in these jaws of death! In
vain we hailed the other boats; as well roar to the live coals
down the chimney of a flaming furnace as hail those boats in that
storm. Meanwhile the driving scud, rack, and mist, grew darker
with the shadows of night; no sign of the ship could be seen. The
rising sea forbade all attempts to bale out the boat. The oars
were useless as propellers, performing now the office of life-
preservers. So, cutting the lashing of the water-proof match keg,
after many failures Starbuck contrived to ignite the lamp in the
lantern; then stretching it on a waif pole, handed it to Queequeg
as the standard-bearer of this forlorn hope. There, then, he sat,
holding up that imbecile candle in the heart of that almighty
forlornness. There, then, he sat, the sign and symbol of a man
without faith, hopelessly holding up hope in the midst of
despair.
Wet, drenched through, and shivering cold,
despairing of ship or boat, we lifted up our eyes as the dawn came
on. The mist still spread over the sea, the empty lantern lay
crushed in the bottom of the boat. Suddenly Queequeg started to
his feet, hollowing his hand to his ear. We all heard a faint
creaking, as of ropes and yards hitherto muffled by the storm.
The sound came nearer and nearer; the thick mists were dimly
parted by
a huge, vague form. Affrighted, we all sprang into the sea as the
ship at last loomed into view, bearing right down upon us within
a distance of not much more than its length.
Floating on the waves we saw the abandoned boat, as for one
instant it tossed and gaped beneath the ship's bows like a chip at
the base of a cataract; and then the vast hull rolled over it, and
it was seen no more till it came up weltering astern. Again we
swam for it, were dashed against it by the seas, and were at last
taken up and safely landed on board. Ere the squall came close
to, the other boats had cut loose from their fish and returned to
the ship in good time. The ship had given us up, but was still
cruising, if haply it might light upon some token of our
perishing, - an oar or a lance pole.
*x*
*x moby_049.html/Chapter xlix - THE HYENA*
There are certain queer times and occasions in this
strange mixed affair we call life when a man takes this whole
universe for a vast practical joke, though the wit thereof he but
dimly discerns, and more than suspects that the joke is at
nobody's expense but his own. However, nothing dispirits, and
nothing seems worth while disputing. He bolts down all events,
all creeds, and beliefs, and persuasions, all hard things visible
and invisible, never mind how knobby; as an ostrich of potent
digestion gobbles down bullets and gun flints. And as for small
difficulties and worryings, prospects of sudden disaster, peril of
life and limb; all these, and death itself, seem to him only sly,
good-natured hits, and jolly punches in the side bestowed by the
unseen and unaccountable old joker. That odd sort of wayward mood
I am speaking of, comes over a man only in some time of extreme
tribulation; it comes in the very midst of his earnestness, so
that what just before might have seemed to him a thing most
momentous, now seems but a part of the general
joke. There is nothing like the perils of whaling to breed this
free and easy sort of genial, desperado philosophy; and with it I
now regarded this whole voyage of the Pequod, and the great White
Whale its object.
"Queequeg," said I, when
they had dragged me, the last man, to the deck, and I was still
shaking myself in my jacket to fling off the water; "Queequeg,
my fine friend, does this sort of thing often happen?" Without
much emotion, though soaked through just like me, he gave me to
understand that such things did often happen.
"Mr. Stubb," said I, turning to that worthy, who,
buttoned up in his oil-jacket, was now calmly smoking his pipe in
the rain; "Mr. Stubb, I think I have heard you say that of all
whalemen you ever met, our chief mate, Mr. Starbuck, is by far the
most careful and prudent. I suppose then, that going plump on a
flying whale with your sail set in a foggy squall is the height of
a whaleman's discretion?"
"Certain. I've
lowered for whales from a leaking ship in a gale off Cape
Horn."
"Mr. Flask," said I, turning to
little King-Post, who was standing close by; "you are
experienced in these things, and I am not. Will you tell me
whether it is an unalterable law in this fishery, Mr. Flask, for
an oarsman to break his own back pulling himself back-foremost
into death's jaws?"
"Can't you twist that
smaller?" said Flask. "Yes, that's the law. I should like
to see a boat's crew backing water up to a whale face foremost.
Ha, ha! the whale would give them squint for squint, mind
that!"
Here then, from three impartial witnesses,
I had a deliberate statement of the entire case. Considering,
therefore, that squalls and capsizings in the water and consequent
bivouacks on the deep, were matters of common occurrence in this
kind of life; considering that at the superlatively critical
instant of going on to the whale I must resign my life into the
hands of him who steered the boat - oftentimes a fellow who at
that very moment is in his impetuousness upon the point of
scuttling the craft with his own frantic stampings; considering
that the particular disaster to our own particular boat was
chiefly to be
imputed to Starbuck's driving on to his whale almost in the teeth
of a squall, and considering that Starbuck, notwithstanding, was
famous for his great heedfulness in the fishery; considering that
I belonged to this uncommonly prudent Starbuck's boat; and finally
considering in what a devil's chase I was implicated, touching the
White Whale: taking all things together, I say, I thought I might
as well go below and make a rough draft of my will.
"Queequeg," said I, "come along, you shall be my lawyer,
executor, and legatee."
It may seem strange that
of all men sailors should be tinkering at their last wills and
testaments, but there are no people in the world more fond of that
diversion. This was the fourth time in my nautical life that I
had done the same thing. After the ceremony was concluded upon the
present occasion, I felt all the easier; a stone was rolled away
from my heart. Besides, all the days I should now live would be as
good as the days that Lazarus lived after his resurrection; a
supplementary clean gain of so many months or weeks as the case
might be. I survived myself; my death and burial were locked up
in my chest. I looked round me tranquilly and contentedly, like
a quiet ghost with a clean conscience sitting inside the bars of a
snug family vault.
Now then, thought I,
unconsciously rolling up the sleeves of my frock, here goes a
cool, collected dive at death and destruction, and the devil fetch
the hindmost.
*x*
*x moby_050.html/Chapter l - AHAB'S BOAT AND CREW. FEDALLAH*
"Who would have thought it, Flask!" cried
Stubb; "if I had but one leg you would not catch me in a boat,
unless maybe to stop the plug-hole with my timber toe. Oh! he's
a wonderful old man!"
"I don't think it so
strange, after all, on that account," said
Flask. "If his leg were off at the hip, now, it would be a
different thing. That would disable him; but he has one knee, and
good part of the other left, you know."
"I
don't know that, my little man; I never yet saw him
kneel."
Among whale-wise people it has often been argued whether,
considering the paramount importance of his life to the success of
the voyage, it is right for a whaling captain to jeopardize that
life in the active perils of the chase. So Tamerlane's soldiers
often argued with tears in their eyes, whether that invaluable
life of his ought to be carried into the thickest of the
fight.
But with Ahab the question assumed a modified
aspect. Considering that with two legs man is but a hobbling
wight in all times of danger; considering that the pursuit of
whales is always under great and extraordinary difficulties; that
every individual moment, indeed, then comprises a peril; under
these circumstances is it wise for any maimed man to enter a
whale-boat in the hunt? As a general thing, the joint-owners of
the Pequod must have plainly thought not.
Ahab well
knew that although his friends at home would think little of his
entering a boat in certain comparatively harmless vicissitudes of
the chase, for the sake of being near the scene of action and
giving his orders in person, yet for Captain Ahab to have a boat
actually apportioned to him as a regular headsman in the hunt
- above all for Captain Ahab to be supplied with five extra men,
as that same boat's crew, he well knew that such generous conceits
never entered the heads of the owners of the Pequod. Therefore he
had not solicited a boat's crew from them, nor had he in any way
hinted his desires on that head. Nevertheless he had taken private
measures of his own touching all that matter. Until Cabaco's
published discovery, the sailors had little foreseen it, though to
be sure when, after being a little while out of port, all hands
had concluded the customary business of fitting the whaleboats for
service; when some time after this Ahab was now and then found
bestirring himself in the matter of making thole-pins with his own
hands for what was thought to be one of the spare boats, and even
solicitously cutting the small wooden skewers, which when the
line is running out are pinned over the groove in the bow: when all
this was observed in him, and particularly his solicitude in
having an extra coat of sheathing in the bottom of the boat, as if
to make it better withstand the pointed pressure of his ivory
limb; and also the anxiety he evinced in exactly shaping the thigh
board, or clumsy cleat, as it is sometimes called, the horizontal
piece in the boat's bow for bracing the knee against in darting or
stabbing at the whale; when it was observed how often he stood up
in that boat with his solitary knee fixed in the semi-circular
depression in the cleat, and with the carpenter's chisel gouged
out a little here and straightened it a little there; all these
things, I say, had awakened much interest and curiosity at the
time. But almost everybody supposed that this particular
preparative heedfulness in Ahab must only be with a view to the
ultimate chase of Moby Dick; for he had already revealed his
intention to hunt that mortal monster in person. But such a
supposition did by no means involve the remotest suspicion as to
any boat's crew being assigned to that boat.
Now,
with the subordinate phantoms, what wonder remained soon waned
away; for in a whaler wonders soon wane. Besides, now and then
such unaccountable odds and ends of strange nations come up from
the unknown nooks and ash-holes of the earth to man these floating
outlaws of whalers; and the ships themselves often pick up such
queer castaway creatures found tossing about the open sea on
planks, bits of wreck, oars, whale-boats, canoes, blown-off
Japanese junks, and what not; that Beelzebub himself might climb up
the side and step down into the cabin to chat with the captain, and
it would not create any unsubduable excitement in the
forecastle.
But be all this as it may, certain it is
that while the subordinate phantoms soon found their place among
the crew, though still as it were somehow distinct from them, yet
that hair-turbaned Fedallah remained a muffled mystery to the last.
Whence he came in a mannerly world like this, by what sort of
unaccountable tie he soon evinced himself to be linked with Ahab's
peculiar fortunes; nay, so far as to have some sort of a half-
hinted influence; Heaven knows, but it might have been even
authority over him; all this none knew. But one cannot sustain
an indifferent air concerning Fedallah. He was such a creature as
civilized, domestic people in the temperate zone only see in their
dreams, and that but dimly; but the like of whom now and then
glide among the unchanging Asiatic communities, especially the
Oriental isles to the east of the continent - those insulated,
immemorial, unalterable countries, which even in these modern days
still preserve much of the ghostly aboriginalness of earth's primal
generations, when the memory of the first man was a distinct
recollection, and all men his descendants, unknowing whence he
came, eyed each other as real phantoms, and asked of the sun and
the moon why they were created and to what end; when though,
according to genesis, the angels indeed consorted with the
daughters of men, the devils also, add the uncanonical Rabbins,
indulged in mundane amours.
*x*
*x moby_051.html/Chapter li - THE SPIRIT-SPOUT*
Days, weeks passed, and under easy sail, the ivory
Pequod had slowly swept across four several cruising-grounds; that
off the Azores; off the Cape de Verdes; on the Plate (so called),
being off the mouth of the Rio de la Plata; and the Carrol Ground,
an unstaked, watery locality, southerly from St. Helena.
It was while gliding through these latter waters that one
serene and moonlight night, when all the waves rolled by like
scrolls of silver; and, by their soft, suffusing seethings, made
what seemed a silvery silence, not a solitude: on such a silent
night a silvery jet was seen far in advance of the white bubbles at
the bow. Lit up by the moon, it looked celestial; seemed some
plumed and glittering god uprising from the sea. Fedallah first
descried this jet. For of these moonlight nights, it was his wont
to mount to the main-mast head, and stand a look-out there, with
the same precision as if it had been day. And yet, though herds of
whales were seen by night, not one whaleman
in a hundred would venture a lowering for them. You may think with
what emotions, then, the seamen beheld this old Oriental perched
aloft at such unusual hours; his turban and the moon, companions
in one sky. But when, after spending his uniform interval there
for several successive nights without uttering a single sound;
when, after all this silence, his unearthly voice was heard
announcing that silvery, moon-lit jet, every reclining mariner
started to his feet as if some winged spirit had lighted in the
rigging, and hailed the mortal crew. "There she blows!" Had
the trump of judgment blown, they could not have quivered more;
yet still they felt no terror; rather pleasure. for though it was
a most unwonted hour, yet so impressive was the cry, and so
deliriously exciting, that almost every soul on board
instinctively desired a lowering.
Walking the deck
with quick, side-lunging strides, Ahab commanded the t'gallant
sails and royals to be set, and every stunsail spread. The best
man in the ship must take the helm. Then, with every mast-head
manned, the piled-up craft rolled down before the wind. The
strange, upheaving, lifting tendency of the taffrail breeze filling
the hollows of so many sails, made the buoyant, hovering deck to
feel like air beneath the feet; while still she rushed along, as
if two antagonistic influences were struggling in her - one to
mount direct to heaven, the other to drive yawingly to some
horizontal goal. And had you watched Ahab's face that night, you
would have thought that in him also two different things were
warring. While his one live leg made lively echoes along the deck,
every stroke of his dead limb sounded like a coffin-tap. On life
and death this old man walked. But though the ship so swiftly
sped, and though from every eye, like arrows, the eager glances
shot, yet the silvery jet was no more seen that night. Every
sailor swore he saw it once, but not a second time.
This midnight-spout had almost grown a forgotten thing,
when, some days after, lo! at the same silent hour, it was again
announced: again it was descried by all; but upon making sail to
overtake it, once more it disappeared as if it had never been.
And so it served us night after night, till no one heeded it but
to wonder at it. Mysteriously jetted into the clear moonlight,
or starlight, as the case might be; disappearing again for one
whole day, or two days, or three; and somehow seeming at every
distinct repetition to be advancing still further and further in
our van, this solitary jet seemed for ever alluring us on.
Nor with the immemorial superstition of their race, and in
accordance with the preternaturalness, as it seemed, which in many
things invested the Pequod, were there wanting some of the seamen
who swore that whenever and wherever descried; at however remote
times, or in however far apart latitudes and longitudes, that
unnearable spout was cast by one self-same whale; and that whale,
Moby Dick. For a time, there reigned, too, a sense of peculiar
dread at this flitting apparition, as if it were treacherously
beckoning us on and on, in order that the monster might turn round
upon us, and rend us at last in the remotest and most savage
seas.
These temporary apprehensions, so vague but so
awful, derived a wondrous potency from the contrasting serenity of
the weather, in which, beneath all its blue blandness, some
thought there lurked a devilish charm, as for days and days we
voyaged along, through seas so wearily, lonesomely mild, that all
space, in repugnance to our vengeful errand, seemed vacating itself
of life before our urn-like prow.
But, at last, when
turning to the eastward, the Cape winds began howling around us,
and we rose and fell upon the long, troubled seas that are there;
when the ivory-tusked Pequod sharply bowed to the blast, and gored
the dark waves in her madness, till, like showers of silver chips,
the foam-flakes flew over her bulwarks; then all this desolate
vacuity of life went away, but gave place to sights more dismal
than before.
Close to our bows, strange forms in the
water darted hither and thither before us; while thick in our rear
flew the inscrutable sea-ravens. And every morning, perched on
our stays, rows of these birds were seen; and spite of our
hootings, for a long time obstinately clung to the hemp, as though
they deemed our ship some drifting, uninhabited craft; a thing
appointed to desolation, and therefore fit roosting-place for
their homeless selves. And heaved and heaved, still unrestingly
heaved the black sea, as if its vast tides were a conscience; and
the great
mundane soul were in anguish and remorse for the long sin and
suffering it had bred.
Cape of Good Hope, do they
call ye? Rather Cape Tormentoto, as called of yore; for long
allured by the perfidious silences that before had attended us, we
found ourselves launched into this tormented sea, where guilty
beings transformed into those fowls and these fish, seemed
condemned to swim on everlastingly without any haven in store, or
beat that black air without any horizon. But calm, snow-white,
and unvarying; still directing its fountain of feathers to the
sky; still beckoning us on from before, the solitary jet would at
times be descried.
During all this blackness of the
elements, Ahab, though assuming for the time the almost continual
command of the drenched and dangerous deck, manifested the
gloomiest reserve; and more seldom than ever addressed his mates.
In tempestuous times like these, after everything above and aloft
has been secured, nothing more can be done but passively to await
the issue of the gale. Then Captain and crew become practical
fatalists. So, with his ivory leg inserted into its accustomed
hole, and with one hand firmly grasping a shroud, Ahab for hours
and hours would stand gazing dead to windward, while an occasional
squall of sleet or snow would all but congeal his very eyelashes
together. Meantime, the crew driven from the forward part of the
ship by the perilous seas that burstingly broke over its bows,
stood in a line along the bulwarks in the waist; and the better to
guard against the leaping waves, each man had slipped himself into
a sort of bowline secured to the rail, in which he swung as in a
loosened belt. Few or no words were spoken; and the silent ship,
as if manned by painted sailors in wax, day after day tore on
through all the swift madness and gladness of the demoniac waves.
By night the same muteness of humanity before the shrieks of the
ocean prevailed; still in silence the men swung in the bowlines;
still wordless Ahab stood up to the blast. Even when wearied
nature seemed demanding repose he would not seek that repose in
his hammock. Never could Starbuck forget the old man's aspect,
when one night going down into the cabin to mark how the
barometer stood, he saw him with closed eyes sitting straight in
his floor-screwed chair; the rain and half-melted sleet of the
storm from which he had some time before emerged, still slowly
dripping from the unremoved hat and coat. On the table beside him
lay unrolled one of those charts of tides and currents which have
previously been spoken of. His lantern swung from his tightly
clenched hand. Though the body was erect, the head was thrown back
so that the closed eyes were pointed towards the needle of the
tell-tale that swung from a beam in the ceiling.
Terrible old man! thought Starbuck with a shudder, sleeping
in this gale, still thou steadfastly eyest thy purpose.
*x*
*x moby_052.html/Chapter lii - THE ALBATROSS*
South-eastward from the Cape, off the distant
Crozetts, a good cruising ground for Right Whalemen, a sail loomed
ahead, the Goney (Albatross) by name. As she slowly drew nigh,
from my lofty perch at the fore-mast-head, I had a good view of
that sight so remarkable to a tyro in the far ocean fisheries
- a whaler at sea, and long absent from home.
As
if the waves had been fullers, this craft was bleached like the
skeleton of a stranded walrus. All down her sides, this spectral
appearance was traced with long channels of reddened rust, while
all her spars and her rigging were like the thick branches of
trees furred over with hoar-frost. Only her lower sails were set.
A wild sight it was to see her long-bearded look-outs at those
three mast-heads. They seemed clad in the skins of beasts, so
torn and bepatched the raiment that had survived nearly four years
of cruising. Standing in iron hoops nailed to the mast, they
swayed and swung over a fathomless sea;
and though, when the ship slowly glided close under our stern, we
six men in the air came so nigh to each other that we might almost
have leaped from the mast-heads of one ship to those of the other;
yet, those forlorn-looking fishermen, mildly eyeing us as they
passed, said not one word to our own look-outs, while the quarter-
deck hail was being heard from below.
"Ship ahoy!
Have ye seen the White Whale?"
But as the strange
captain, leaning over the pallid bulwarks, was in the act of
putting his trumpet to his mouth, it somehow fell from his hand
into the sea; and the wind now rising amain, he in vain strove to
make himself heard without it. Meantime his ship was still
increasing the distance between. While in various silent ways the
seamen of the Pequod were evincing their observance of this
ominous incident at the first mere mention of the White Whale's
name to another ship, Ahab for a moment paused; it almost seemed
as though he would have lowered a boat to board the stranger, had
not the threatening wind forbade. But taking advantage of his
windward position, he again seized his trumpet, and knowing by her
aspect that the stranger vessel was a Nantucketer and shortly bound
home, he loudly hailed - "Ahoy there! This is the Pequod,
bound round the world! Tell them to address all future letters to
the Pacific ocean! and this time three years, if I am not at
home, tell them to address them to - - "
At
that moment the two wakes were fairly crossed, and instantly, then,
in accordance with their singular ways, shoals of small harmless
fish, that for some days before had been placidly swimming by our
side, darted away with what seemed shuddering fins, and ranged
themselves fore and aft with the stranger's flanks. Though in the
course of his continual voyagings Ahab must often before have
noticed a similar sight, yet, to any monomaniac man, the veriest
trifles capriciously carry meanings.
"Swim away
from me, do ye?" murmured Ahab, gazing over into the water.
There seemed but little in the words, but the tone conveyed more
of deep helpless sadness than the insane old man had ever before
evinced. But turning to the steersman, who thus far had been
holding the ship in the wind to diminish
her headway, he cried out in his old lion voice, - "Up helm!
Keep her off round the world!"
Round the world!
There is much in that sound to inspire proud feelings; but whereto
does all that circumnavigation conduct? Only through numberless
perils to the very point whence we started, where those that we
left behind secure, were all the time before us.
Were
this world an endless plain, and by sailing eastward we could for
ever reach new distances, and discover sights more sweet and
strange than any Cyclades or Islands of King Solomon, then there
were promise in the voyage. But in pursuit of those far mysteries
we dream of, or in tormented chase of that demon phantom that,
some time or other, swims before all human hearts; while chasing
such over this round globe, they either lead us on in barren mazes
or midway leave us whelmed.
The ostensible reason why Ahab did not go on board
of the whaler we had spoken was this: the wind and sea betokened
storms. But even had this not been the case, he would not after
all, perhaps, have boarded her - judging by his subsequent
conduct on similar occasions - if so it had been that, by the
process of hailing, he had obtained a negative answer to the
question he put. For, as it eventually turned out, he cared not
to consort, even for five minutes, with any stranger captain,
except he could contribute some of that information he so
absorbingly sought. But all this might remain inadequately
estimated, were not something said here of the peculiar usages of
whaling-vessels when meeting each other in foreign seas, and
especially on a common cruising-ground.
If two
strangers crossing the Pine Barrens in New York State, or the
equally desolate Salisbury Plain in England; if
casually encountering each other in such inhospitable wilds, these
twain, for the life of them, cannot well avoid a mutual
salutation; and stopping for a moment to interchange the news;
and, perhaps, sitting down for a while and resting in concert:
then, how much more natural that upon the illimitable Pine Barrens
and Salisbury Plains of the sea, two whaling vessels descrying each
other at the ends of the earth - off lone Fanning's Island, or
the far away King's Mills; how much more natural, I say, that
under such circumstances these ships should not only interchange
hails, but come into still closer, more friendly and sociable
contact. And especially would this seem to be a matter of course,
in the case of vessels owned in one seaport, and whose captains,
officers, and not a few of the men are personally known to each
other; and consequently, have all sorts of dear domestic things to
talk about.
For the long absent ship, the outward-
bounder, perhaps, has letters on board; at any rate, she will be
sure to let her have some papers of a date a year or two later
than the last one on her blurred and thumb-worn files. And in
return for that courtesy, the outward-bound ship would receive the
latest whaling intelligence from the cruising-ground to which she
may be destined, a thing of the utmost importance to her. And in
degree, all this will hold true concerning whaling vessels
crossing each other's track on the cruising-ground itself, even
though they are equally long absent from home. for one of them may
have received a transfer of letters from some third, and now far
remote vessel; and some of those letters may be for the people of
the ship she now meets. Besides, they would exchange the whaling
news, and have an agreeable chat. For not only would they meet
with all the sympathies of sailors, but likewise with all the
peculiar congenialities arising from a common pursuit and mutually
shared privations and perils.
Nor would difference
of country make any very essential difference; that is, so long as
both parties speak one language, as is the case with Americans and
English. Though, to be sure, from the small number of English
whalers, such meetings do not very often occur, and when they do
occur there is too apt to be a sort of shyness between them; for
your Englishman is rather
reserved, and your Yankee, he does not fancy that sort of thing in
anybody but himself. Besides, the English whalers sometimes
affect a kind of metropolitan superiority over the American
whalers; regarding the long, lean Nantucketer, with his
nondescript provincialisms, as a sort of sea-peasant. But where
this superiority in the English whalemen does really consist, it
would be hard to say, seeing that the Yankees in one day,
collectively, kill more whales than all the English, collectively,
in ten years. But this is a harmless little foible in the English
whale-hunters, which the Nantucketer does not take much to heart;
probably, because he knows that he has a few foibles
himself.
So, then, we see that of all ships
separately sailing the sea, the whalers have most reason to be
sociable - and they are so. Whereas, some merchant ships
crossing each other's wake in the mid-Atlantic, will oftentimes
pass on without so much as a single word of recognition, mutually
cutting each other on the high seas, like a brace of dandies in
Broadway; and all the time indulging, perhaps, in finical
criticism upon each other's rig. As for Men-of-War, when they
chance to meet at sea, they first go through such a string of
silly bowings and scrapings, such a ducking of ensigns, that there
does not seem to be much right-down hearty good-will and brotherly
love about it at all. As touching Slave-ships meeting, why, they
are in such a prodigious hurry, they run away from each other as
soon as possible. And as for Pirates, when they chance to cross
each other's cross-bones, the first hail is - "How many
skulls?" - the same way that whalers hail - "How many
barrels?" And that question once answered, pirates straightway
steer apart, for they are infernal villains on both sides, and
don't like to see overmuch of each other's villanous
likenesses.
But look at the godly, honest,
unostentatious, hospitable, sociable, free-and-easy whaler! What
does the whaler do when she meets another whaler in any sort of
decent weather? She has a "Gam", a thing so utterly
unknown to all other ships that they never heard of the name even;
and if by chance they should hear of it, they only grin at it, and
repeat gamesome stuff about "spouters" and "blubber-
boilers," and such like pretty exclamations. Why it is that
all Merchant-seamen, and also all
Pirates and Man-of-War's men, and Slave-ship sailors, cherish such
a scornful feeling towards Whale-ships; this is a question it
would be hard to answer. Because, in the case of pirates, say, I
should like to know whether that profession of theirs has any
peculiar glory about it. It sometimes ends in uncommon elevation,
indeed; but only at the gallows. And besides, when a man is
elevated in that odd fashion, he has no proper foundation for his
superior altitude. Hence, I conclude, that in boasting himself to
be high lifted above a whaleman, in that assertion the pirate has
no solid basis to stand on.
But what is a
Gam? You might wear out your index-finger running up and
down the columns of dictionaries, and never find the word. Dr.
Johnson never attained to that erudition; Noah Webster's ark does
not hold it. Nevertheless, this same expressive word has now for
many years been in constant use among some fifteen thousand true
born Yankees. Certainly it needs a definition, and should be
incorporated into the Lexicon. With that view, let me learnedly
define it.
GAM. Noun - A social
meeting of two (or more) Whale-ships, generally on a cruising-
ground; when, after exchanging hails, they exchange visits by
boats' crews: the two captains remaining, for the time, on board
of one ship, and the two chief mates on the other.
There is another little item about Gamming which must not be
forgotten here. All professions have their own little
peculiarities of detail; so has the whale fishery. In a pirate,
man-of-war, or slave ship, when the captain is rowed anywhere in
his boat, he always sits in the stern sheets on a comfortable,
sometimes cushioned seat there, and often steers himself with a
pretty little milliner's tiller decorated with gay cords and
ribbons. But the whale-boat has no seat astern, no sofa of that
sort whatever, and no tiller at all. High times indeed, if whaling
captains were wheeled about the water on castors like gouty old
aldermen in patent chairs. And as for a tiller, the whale-boat
never admits of any such effeminacy; and therefore as in gamming a
complete boat's crew must leave the ship, and hence as the boat
steerer or harpooneer is of the number, that subordinate is the
steersman upon the occasion, and the captain, having no
place to sit in, is pulled off to his visit all standing like a
pine tree. And often you will notice that being conscious of the
eyes of the whole visible world resting on him from the sides of
the two ships, this standing captain is all alive to the
importance of sustaining his dignity by maintaining his legs. nor
is this any very easy matter; for in his rear is the immense
projecting steering oar hitting him now and then in the small of
his back, the after-oar reciprocating by rapping his knees in
front. He is thus completely wedged before and behind, and can
only expand himself sideways by settling down on his stretched
legs; but a sudden, violent pitch of the boat will often go far to
topple him, because length of foundation is nothing without
corresponding breadth. Merely make a spread angle of two poles,
and you cannot stand them up. Then, again, it would never do in
plain sight of the world's riveted eyes, it would never do, I say,
for this straddling captain to be seen steadying himself the
slightest particle by catching hold of anything with his hands;
indeed, as token of his entire, buoyant self-command, he generally
carries his hands in his trowsers' pockets; but perhaps being
generally very large, heavy hands, he carries them there for
ballast. Nevertheless there have occurred instances, well
authenticated ones too, where the captain has been known for an
uncommonly critical moment or two, in a sudden squall say - to
seize hold of the nearest oarsman's hair, and hold on there like
grim death.
*x*
*x moby_054.html/Chapter liv - THE TOWN-HO'S STORY*
As told at the Golden InQuohog
his
mark
page 90
page 91
page 92
page 93
page 94
page 94
page 95
page 96
page 97
page 98
page 99
page 100
page 100
page 101
page 102
page 103
page 104
page 104
page 105
page 106
page 107
page 108
page 109
page 110
page 110
page 111
page 111
page 112
page 113
page 114
page 115
page 116
page 117
page 118
page 119
page 119
page 120
page 121
page 122
page 123
page 124
page 125
page 126
page 127
page 128
page 129
page 130
page 131
page 132
page 133
page 134
page 135
page 136
page 137
page 138
page 139
page 140
page 141
page 142
page 142
page 143
page 144
page 145
page 145
page 146
page 147
page 148
page 149
page 150
page 151
page 152
page 153
page 154
page 155
page 156
page 157
page 157
page 158
page 159
page 160
page 161
page 162
page 163
page 164
page 165
page 165
page 166
page 166
page 167
page 168
page 169
page 170
page 171
page 172
page 173
page 174
page 175
page 175
page 176
page 177
page 178
page 179
page 180
page 181
page 182
page 183
page 184
page 185
page 185
page 186
page 187
page 188
page 189
page 190
page 191
page 192
page 193
page 194
page 194
page 195
page 195
page 196
page 197
page 198
page 199
page 200
page 200
page 201
page 202
page 203
page 204
page 205
page 206
page 207
page 208
page 209
page 209
page 210
page 211
page 212
page 212
page 213
page 214
page 215
page 216
page 217
page 218
page 219
page 220
page 221
page 222
page 223
page 224
page 225
page 225
page 226
page 227
page 227
page 228
page 229
page 230
page 230
page 231
page 232
page 233
page 234
page 234
page 235
page 236
page 236
page 237
page 238
page 239
page 240
page 240